Project
Gutenberg Consortia
Center's
World Public
Library Collection
Project Gutenberg Consortia Center Collection, a member of the World
Public Library,http://WorldLibrary.net,
bringing the world's eBook collections together.
Conditions
of Use:
This
eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use
it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with
this eBook or full complete details are online at: http://gutenberg.net/license.
Here are 3 of the more major items to consider:
The eBooks
on the PG sites are not 100% public domain, some of them are copyrighted
and used by permission and thus you may charge for redistribution
only via direct permission from the copyright holders.
Project
Gutenberg is a registered trademark [TM]. For any other purpose
than to redistribute eBooks containing the entire Project Gutenberg
file free of charge and with the headers intact, permission is
required.
The public
domain status is per U.S. copyright law. This eBook is from the
Project Gutenberg Consortia Center of the United States.
The mission of the Project Gutenberg Consortia Center is to provide
a similar framework for the collection of eBook collections as does
Project Gutenberg for single eBooks, operating under the practices,
and general guidelines of Project Gutenberg. The major additional
function of Project Gutenberg Consortia Center is to manage the addition
of large collections of eBooks from other eBook creation and collection
centers around the world.
For more great classic literature visit:
The
World Public Library and Project Gutenberg Consortia Center, bringing
the world's eBook collections together http://www.Gutenberg.us
I dispatched an express this morning to Captain Lewis at St. Louis.
All our provisions, goods, and equipage on board of a boat of 22 oars
[party], a large pirogue of 71 oars [in which 8 French], a second
pirogue of 6 oars [soldiers], complete with sails, Men completed with
powder cartridges and 100 balls each, all in health and readiness to
set out. (The words and phrases in brackets did not appear in the
original journals. They represent additions or corrections made by
several people between 1806 and the present, including Clark himself,
who edited the journals before the first publication. Words and phrases
in parentheses were in parentheses in the journals as originally
written.) Boats and everything complete, with the necessary stores of
provisions and such articles of merchandise as we thought ourselves
authorized to procure-though not as much as I think necessary for the
multitude of Indians through which we must pass on our road across the
continent.
Captain Clark, River Dubois opposite the mouth of the Missouri
River, 13 May 1804
Rained the fore part of the day. I determined to go as far as St.
Charles, a French village seven leagues up the Missouri, and wait at
that place until Captain Lewis could finish the business which he was
obliged to attend to at St. Louis,, and join me by land from that place
(24 miles). I calculated that if any alterations in the loading of the
vessels or other changes were necessary, they might be made at St.
Charles.
I set out at 4 o'clock, P.M., in the presence of many of the
neighboring inhabitants and proceeded under a gentle breeze up the
Missouri to the upper point of the first island, 4 miles, and camped on
the island.
Captain Clark, 14 May 1804
It rained during the greater part of last night and continued until
7 o'clock A.M., after which the party proceeded. The barge ran foul
there several times on logs, and in one instance it was with much
difficulty they could get her off. Happily no injury was sustained,
though the barge was several minutes in imminent danger. This was
caused by her being too heavily laden in the stern. Persons accustomed
to the navigation of the Missouri, and the Mississippi also, below the
mouth of this river, uniformly take the precaution to load their
vessels heaviest in the bow when they ascend the stream, in order to
avoid the danger incident to running foul of the concealed timber,
which lies in great quantities in the beds of these rivers. Captain
Lewis, 15 May 1804
Note: The commanding officer is fully assured that every man of his
detachment will have a true respect for his own dignity and not make it
necessary for him to leave St. Charles for a more retired situation
[The orderly book was a record kept in each command of all written
orders]. Orderly Book, St. Charles, 16 May 1804
A fair day. Compelled to punish for misconduct. Several Kickapoo
Indians visit me today. George Drouilliard arrived.
Captain Clark, 17 May 1804
A sergeant and four men of the party destined for the Missouri
Expedition will convene at 11 o'clock today on the quarterdeck of the
boat and form themselves into a court-martial, to hear and determine
(in behalf of the captain), the evidences adduced against William
Warner Hugh Hall, for being absent last night without leave, contrary
to orders; and John Collins, first for being absent without leave;
second, for behaving in an unbecoming manner at the ball last night;
third, for speaking in a language last night after his return tending
to bring into disrespect the orders of the commanding officer. Set out
at half-past three o'clock, under three cheers from the gentlemen on
the bank, and proceeded to the head of the island (which is situated on
the starboard side), three miles. Captain Clark, 21 May 1804
We set out early, ran on a log, and were detained one hour,
proceeded the course of last night two miles to the mouth of a creek on
the starboard side, called Osage Woman's River, about 30 yards wide,
opposite a large island and a [American] settlement. On this creek 30
or 40 families are settled.
Stopped about one mile above for Captain Lewis, who had ascended
the cliff which is at said cave, three hundred feet high, hanging over
the waters. The water excessively swift today. We encamped below a
small island in the middle of the river. Sent out two hunters. One
killed a deer. This evening we examined the arms and ammunition. Found
those men's arms in the pirogue in bad order. A fair evening. Captain
Lewis near falling from the pinnacles of rocks, 300 feet. He caught at
20 feet. Captain Clark, 23 May 1804
Camped at the mouth of a creek called Riviere la Charrette, above a
small French village of seven houses and as many families settled at
this place to be convenient to hunt and trade with the Indians. Here we
met M. Loisel, immediately down from the Cedar Island, in the country
of the Sioux, 400 leagues up. He gave us a good deal of information.
Captain Clark, 25 May 1804
At 1 o'clock we brought to, two chaussies, one loaded with furs and
peltries, the other with buffalo grease and tallow. We purchased 300
pounds of grease; and, finding that old Mr. Dorion was of the party, we
questioned him until it was too late to go further.
Concluding to take old Mr. Dorion back as far as the Sioux nation,
with a view to get some of their chiefs to visit the President of the
United States-this man being a very confidential friend of those
people, he having resided with the nation twenty-odd years.
Captain Clark, 12 June 1804
George Drouilliard, our hunter, and one man came in with two deer
and a bear, also a young horse they had found in the prairie. This
horse had been in the prairie a long time and is fat. I suppose he has
been left by some war party against the Osages. The party is much
afflicted with boils, and several have the dysentery.
Captain Clark, 17 June 1804
Ordered.-A court-martial will sit this day at 11 o'clock, to
consist of five members, for the trial of John Collins and Hugh Hall,
confined on charges exhibited against them by Sergeant Floyd, agreeable
to the Articles of War.... John Collins charged with getting drunk on
his post this morning out of whiskey put under his charge as sentinel,
and for suffering Hugh Hall to draw whiskey out of the said barrel
intended for the party.
To this charge the prisoner pleaded "not guilty."
The court, after mature deliberation on the evidence adduced, are
of opinion the prisoner is guilty of the charge exhibited against him,
and do therefore sentence him to receive one hundred lashes on his bare
back.
Hugh Hall was brought before the court charged with taking whiskey
out of a keg this morning, which whiskey was stored on the bank (and
under the charge of the guard), contrary to all order, rule, or
regulation.
To this charge the prisoner pleaded guilty.
The court find the prisoner guilty and sentence him to receive
fifty lashes on his bare back. Orderly Book, 29 June 1804
Ushered in the day by a discharge of one shot from our bow piece,
proceeded on, passed the mouth of a bayou leading from a large lake on
the S.S., which has the appearance of being once the bend of the river,
and reaches parallel for several miles. We came to on the L.S. to
refresh ourselves [the abbreviation "S.S." stands for "starboard," or
the right-hand side when one is facing forward on a ship. "L.S." means
"larboard," or left-hand side]. Joseph Fields got bitten by a snake,
and was quickly doctored with bark by Captain Lewis.
We passed a creek twelve yards wide, on the L.S., coming out of an
extensive prairie reaching within two hundred yards of the river. As
this creek has no name, and this being the Fourth of July, the day of
the Independence of the United States, we called it "Fourth of July
1804 Creek." We dined on corn. Captain Lewis walked on shore above this
creek and discovered a high mound from the top of which he had an
extensive view. Three paths came together at the mound. We saw great
numbers of goslings today which were nearly grown. The lake is clear
and contains great quantities of fish and geese and goslings. This
induced me to call it Gosling Lake. A small creek and several springs
run into the lake on the east side from the hills. The land on that
side is very good.
Captain Clark, 4 July 1804
Set out early. Passed some swift water which obliged us to draw up
by ropes. A sand bar at the point, opposite a beautiful prairie on the
S. side, called St. Michael. Those prairies on the river have very much
the appearance of farms from the river, divided by narrow strips of
woodland, which woodland is situated on the runs leading to the river.
Passed a bluff of yellow clay above the prairie. Saw a large rat on the
bank. Killed a wolf. One man very sick-struck with the sun. Captain
Lewis bled him and gave niter, which has revived him much.
Captain Clark, 7 July 1804
Set out early. Passed a small creek and two small islands on the
S.S. Five men sick today with violent headache, We made some
arrangements as to provisions and messes. Came to for dinner at the
lower point of a very large island situated near the S.S. After a delay
of two hours we passed a narrow channel 45 to 80 yards wide five miles
to the mouth of Nodaway River.
Captain Clark, 8 July 1804
In order to ensure a prudent and regular use of all provisions
issued to the crew of the bateaux in future, as also to provide for the
equal distribution of the same among the individuals of the several
messes, the commanding officers do appoint the following persons to
receive, cook, and take charge of the provisions which may from time to
time be issued to their respective messes, viz., John B. Thompson to
Sergeant Floyd's mess, William Warner to Sergeant Ordway's mess, and
John Collins to Sergeant Pryor's mess.
These Superintendents of Provision are held immediately responsible
to the commanding officers for a judicious consumption of the provision
which they receive; they are to cook the same for their several messes
in due time, and in such manner as is most wholesome and best
calculated to afford the greatest proportion of nutriment; in their
mode of cooking they are to exercise their own judgment. They shall
also point out what part, and what proportion of the mess provisions
are to be consumed at each stated meal, i.e., morning, noon, and night.
Nor is any man at any time to take or consume any part of the mess
provisions without the privity, knowledge, and consent of the
superintendent. The superintendent is also held responsible for all the
cooking utensils of his mess. In consideration of the duties imposed by
this order on Thompson, Warner, and Collins, they will in future be
exempt from guard duty, though they will still be held on the roster
for that duty, and their regular tour shall be performed by someone of
their respective messes; they are exempted also from pitching the tents
of the mess, collecting firewood, and forks, poles, for cooking and
drying such fresh meat as may be furnished them; those duties are to be
also performed by the other members of the mess. Orderly Book, Nodaway
Island, July 8th, l 804
One man sent back to the river we passed last night to blaze a tree
with a view to notify the party on shore of our passing. Set out and
passed the head of the island which was situated opposite to our camp
last night-a sand bar at the head. Opposite this island a creek or
bayou comes in from a large pond on the starboard side. As our flanking
party saw great numbers of pike in this pond, I have laid it down with
that name annexed. At 8 o'clock the wind shifted from the N.E. to the
S.W. and it commenced raining. At six miles, passed the mouth of the
creek on the L.S. called Montain's Creek. About two miles above are
some cabins where our bowman and several Frenchmen camped two years
ago. Passed an island on the S.S. in a bend of the river opposite some
cliffs on the L.S. The wind shifted to the N.W. opposite this island,
and on the L. side Wolf River comes in. This river is about 60 yards
wide and heads with the waters of the Kansas, and is navigable for
pirogues "some distance up." Camped at a point on the L.S. opposite the
head of the island. Our party was encamped on the opposite side. Their
not answering our signals caused us to suspect the persons camped
opposite to us were a war party of Sioux. We fired the bow piece to
alarm the party on shore, all prepared to oppose if attacked.
Captain Clark, 9 July 1804
Set out early this morning and crossed the river with a view to see
who the party was that camped on the other side. We soon discovered
them to be our men. Proceeded on past a prairie on the L.S. at 4 miles.
Passed a creek L.S. called Pape's Creek after a man who killed himself
at its mouth. This creek is 15 yards wide. Dined on an island called
Solomon's Island. Delayed three hours on this island to recruit the
men. Opposite on the L.S. is a beautiful bottom plain of about 2,000
acres covered with wild rye and potatoes (ground apple), intermixed
with the grass.
Captain Clark, 10 July 1804
Set out early. Passed a willow island in a bend on the S.S. Back of
this island a creek comes in, called by the Indians Tarkio. I went on
shore above this creek and walked up parallel with the river about half
a mile distant. The bottom I found low and subject to overflow. Still
further out, the undergrowth and vines were so thick that I could not
get through with ease. After walking about three or four miles, I
observed a fresh horse track; where he had been feeding I turned my
course to the river and pursued the track, and found him on a sand
beach. This horse probably had been left by some party of Ottawas,
hunters who wintered or hunted in this quarter last fall or winter. I
joined the party on a large sand island immediately opposite the mouth
of Nemaha River, at which place they had camped. This island is sand,
about half of it covered with small willows of two different kinds, one
narrow and the other a broad leaf. Several hunters sent out today on
both sides of the river. Seven deer killed today-Drouilliard killed six
of them. Made some lunar observations this evening.
Captain Clark, 11 July 1804
Concluded to delay here today with a view of taking equal altitudes
and making observations as well as refreshing our men, who are much
fatigued. After an early breakfast I, with five men in a pirogue,
ascended the riverNemaha about three miles to the mouth of a small
creek on the lower side. Here I got out of the pirogue. After going to
several small mounds in a level plain, I ascended a hill on the lower
side. On this hill, several artificial mounds were raised; from the top
of the highest of those mounds I had an extensive view of the
surrounding plains, which afforded one of the most pleasing prospects I
ever beheld: under me a beautiful river of clear water about 80 yards
wide, meandering through a level and extensive meadow, as far as I
could see-the prospect much enlivened by the few trees and shrubs which
border the bank of the river, and the creeks and runs falling into it.
The bottom land is covered with grass about 41/2 feet high, and appears
as level as a smooth surface. The second bottom [the upper land] is
also covered with grass and rich weeds and flowers, interspersed with
copses of the Osage plum, on the rising lands. Small groves of trees
are seen, with numbers of grapes and a wild cherry resembling the
common wild cherry, only larger, and growing on a small bush on the
tops of those hills in every direction. I observed artificial mounds
(or as I may more justly term graves) which to me is a EM evidence of
this country being once thickly settled. (The Indians of the Missouris
still keep up the custom of burying their dead on high ground.) After a
ramble of about two miles, I returned to the pirogue and descended down
the river. Gathered some grapes, nearly ripe. On a sandstone bluff
about 1/4 of a mile from its mouth on the lower side, I observed some
Indian marks. Went to the rock which jutted over the water and marked
my name 8 and the day of the month and year. Tried a man for sleeping
on his post, and inspected the arms, ammunition, of the party. Found
all complete. Took some lunar observations. Three deer killed today.
Captain Clark, 12 July 1804
A court-martial consisting of the two commanding officers will
convene this day at one o'clock, P.M., for the trial of such prisoners
as may be brought before them. One of the court will act as judge
advocate. Orderly Book, Latitude 39 55' 56", N. Camp New Island,12
July 1804
The commanding officers, Captains M. Lewis and W. Clark,
constituted themselves a court-martial for the trial of such prisoners
as are guilty of capital crimes, and under the rules and articles of
war punishable by death.
Alexander Willard was brought forward, charged with "lying down and
sleeping on his post while a sentinel, on the night of the 11th
instant." (By John Ordway, sergeant of the guard.)
To this charge the prisoner pleads guilty of lying down, and not
guilty of going to sleep.
The court, after duly considering the evidence adduced, are of the
opinion that the prisoner Alexander Willard is guilty of every part of
the charge exhibited against him. It being a breach of the rules and
articles of war (as well as tending to the probable destruction of the
party) do sentence him to receive one hundred lashes on his bare back,
at four different times in equal proportion; and order that the
punishment commence this evening at sunset, and continue to be
inflicted, by the guard, every evening until completed. Orderly Book
Set out at sunrise, and proceeded on under a gentle breeze. At two
miles, passed the mouth of a small river on the S.S. called by the
Indians Tarkio. A channel running out of the river three miles above
(which is now filled up with sand) runs into this creek, and formed an
island, called St. Josephs. Several sand bars parallel to each other
above. In the first bend to the left is situated a beautiful and
extensive plain, covered with grass resembling timothy, except the seed
which resembles flaxseed. This plain also abounds in grapes of
different kinds, some nearly ripe. I killed two goslings nearly grown.
Several others killed and caught on shore, also one old goose with
pinfeathers. She could not fly. At about 12 miles, passed an island
situated in a bend on the S.S.-above this island is a large sand bar
covered with willows. The wind from the south. Camped on a large sand
bar making out from the L side, opposite a high, handsome prairie, the
hills about 4 or 5 miles on starboard side.
Captain Clark, 13 July 1804
Some hard showers of rain this morning prevented our setting out
until seven o'clock. At half-past seven, the atmosphere became suddenly
darkened by a black and dismal-looking cloud. At the time we were in a
situation not to be bettered, near the upper point of the sand island,
on which we lay, and [on] the opposite shore, the bank was falling in
and lined with snags as far as we could see down. In this situation the
storm, which passed over an open plain from the N.E., struck the oar
boat on the starboard quarter, and would have thrown her up on the sand
island dashed to pieces in an instant, had not the party leaped out on
the leeward side, and kept her off with the assistance of the anchor
and cable, until the storm was over. The waves washed over her windward
side and she must have filled with water if the lockers, which are
covered with tarpaulins, had not thrown off the water and prevented any
quantity getting into the bilge of the boat. In this situation we
continued about 40 minutes, when the storm suddenly ceased and the
river became instantaneously as smooth as glass.
The two pirogues, during this storm, were in a similar situation
with the boat about half a mile above. The wind shifted to the S.E.,
and we sailed up past a small island situated on the S.S., and dined,
and continued two hours, men examined their arms. About a mile above
this island we passed a small trading fort on the S.S., where Mr.
Bennet of St. Louis traded with the Otos and Pawnees two years. I went
on shore to shoot some elk on a sand bar to the L.S. I fired at one but
did not get him. Several men unwell with boils, felons, The river falls
a little.
Captain Clark, 14 July 1804
A heavy fog this morning prevented our setting out before seven
o'clock. At nine I took two men and walked on the L.S. I crossed three
beautiful streams of running water heading into the prairies. On those
streams the land very fine, covered with pea vine and rich weed. The
high prairies are also good land, covered with grass, entirely void of
timber, except what grows on the water. I proceeded on through those
prairies several miles to the mouth of a large creek on the L.S. called
Little Nemaha. This is a small river.
Captain Clark, 15 July 1804
A fair morning. Set a party to look for timber for oars; two
parties to hunt. At eleven o'clock sent off George Drouilliard and
Peter Cruzat with some tobacco to invite the Otos if at their town, and
Pawnees if they saw them, to come and talk with us at our camp, (At
this season, the Indians on this river are in the prairies hunting the
buffalo, but some signs of hunters near this place and the plains being
on fire near their towns induce a belief that they-this nation- have
returned to get some green corn or roasting ears.) Raised a staff,
sunned and dried our provisions, I commence copying a map of the river
below to send to the President, United States. Five deer killed today.
One man with a tumor 2 on his breast. Prepared our camp. The men put
their arms in order. Wind hard this afternoon from the N.W.
Captain Clark, Camp White Catfish, nine [10] miles above the Platte
River, 23 July 1804
A fair day. The wind blows hard from the south. The breezes, which
are very frequent in this part of theMissouri, are cool and refreshing.
Several hunters out today, but, as game of all kinds is scarce, only
two deer were brought in. I am much engaged drawing off a map. Captain
Lewis also much engaged in preparing papers to send back by a pirogue,
which we intended to send back from the River Platte. Observations at
this place makes the latitude 41¡ 3' 19" North.
This evening Goodrich caught a white catfish, its eyes small and
tail much like that of a dolphin.
Captain Clark, White Catfish Camp, 10 miles above Platte, 24 July
1804
The wind blustering and hard from the south all day, which blew the
clouds of sand in such a manner that I could not complete my plan in
the tent. The boat rolled in such a manner that I could do nothing in
that, and was compelled to go to the woods and combat the mosquitoes. I
opened the tumor of a man, on the left breast, which discharged half a
pint.
Five beaver caught near the camp, the flesh 3 of which we made use
of. This evening we found very pleasant. Only one deer killed today.
The country back from camp on the S.S. is a bottom about 5 miles
wide-one-half the distance woods and the balance plain high and dry.
The opposite side, a high hill-about 170 foot-rock foundation covered
with timber. Back and below is a plain.
Captain Clark,Catfish, which is White Camp, 26 July 1804
Sent a Frenchman, La Liberte, with the Indian to Otos' camp to
invite the Indians to meet us on the river above. A dark, rainy
morning; wind from the W.N.W., rained all the last night. Set out at 5
o'clock opposite the island-the bend to the right or S.S. within 20
feet of Indian Knob Creek. The water of this creek is 5 feet higher
than that of the river. Past the island we stopped to dine under some
high trees near the high land on the L.S. In a few minutes, caught
three very large catfish, one nearly white. Those fish are in great
plenty on the sides of the river and very fat. A quart of oil came out
of the surplus fat of one of those fish.
Captain Clark, 29 July 1804
Set out this morning early. Proceeded on to a clear open prairie on
the L.S. on a rise of about 70 feet higher than the bottom, which is
also a prairie (both forming bluffs to the river) of high grass and
plum bush, grapes, and situated above high water. In a small grove of
timber at the foot of the rising ground, between those two prairies,
and below the bluffs of the high prairie, we came to and formed a camp,
intending to wait the return of the Frenchman and Indians. The white
horse which we found near the Kansas River died last night.
Posted out our guard, and sent out four men. Captain Lewis and I
went up the bank and walked a short distance in the high prairie. This
prairie is covered with grass ten or twelve inches in height; soil of
good quality; and at the distance of about a mile further back, the
country rises about 80 or 90 feet higher, and is one continued plain as
far as can be seen. From the bluff on the second rise immediately above
our camp, the most beautiful prospect of the river, up and down, and
the country opposite, presented itself, which I ever beheld.
Captain Clark, 30 July 1804
A fair day. Three hunters out. Took meridian altitude, made the
latitude 41¡ 18' 1 5/10"N. R. and Jo. Fields returned to camp; they
killed three deer. The horses strayed off last night. Drouilliard
killed a buck, one inch of fat on the ribs. R. and Jo. Fields returned
without any meat, having been in pursuit of the horses. The Indians not
yet arrived. Caught a young beaver alive which is already quite tame.
Caught a buffalo fish. The evening very cool, the mosquitoes are yet
troublesome.
Captain Clark, 31 July 1804
A fair morning. Dispatched two men after the horses lost yesterday.
One man back to the place from which the messenger was sent for the
Otos, to see if any Indians were, or had been, there since our
departure. He returned and informed that no person had been there since
we left it. The prairie which is situated below our camp is above the
high-water level and rich, covered with grass from 5 to 8 feet high,
interspersed with copses of hazel, plums, currants, like those of the
U.S.
A very pleasant breeze from the S.E. The two men, Drouilliard and
Colter, returned with the horses loaded with elk. Those horses they
found about 12 miles in a southerly direction from camp.
The country through which they passed is similar to what we see
from camp. One beaver and a foot [of a beaver caught in a trap] caught
this morning.
At sunset, Mr. Fairfong [Oto interpreter resident with them] and a
party of the Oto and Missouri Nations came to camp. Among those
Indians, six were chiefs (not the principal chiefs). Captain Lewis and
myself met those Indians and informed them we were glad to see them,
and would speak to them tomorrow. Sent them some roasted meat, pork,
flour and meal. In return, they sent us watermelons. Every man on his
guard and ready for anything.
Captain Clark, 2 August 1804
Made up a small present for those people in proportion to their
consequence; also a package with a medal to accompany a speech for the
grand chief. After breakfast, we collected those Indians under an
awning of our mainsail. In presence of our party, paraded, and
delivered a long speech to them, expressive of our journey, the wishes
of our government, some advice to them, and directions how they were to
conduct themselves. The principal chief for the nation being absent, we
sent him the speech, flag, medal, and some clothes. After hearing what
they had to say, delivered a medal of second grade to one for the Otos
and one for the Missouris, and presented four medals of a third grade
to the inferior chiefs-two for each tribe. Those two parts of nations,
Otos and Missouris, now residing together are about 250 men, the Otos
composing 2/3 and the Missouris 1/3 part.
Those chiefs all delivered a speech, acknowledging their
approbation to the speech and promising to pursue the advice and
directions given them, that they were happy to find that they had
fathers which might be depended on,
We gave them a canister of powder and a bottle of whiskey, and
delivered a few presents to the whole, after giving a breech cloth some
paint, gartering, and a medal to those we made chiefs. After Captain
Lewis's shooting the air gun a few shots (which astonished those
natives), we set out, and proceeded on five miles, on a direct line
past a point on the S.S. and around a large sand bar on the L.S., and
camped on the upper point. The mosquitoes excessively troublesome this
evening. Great appearance of wind and rain to the N.W. We prepare to
receive it. The man Liberte whom we sent for the Otos has not come up.
He left the Otos' town one day before the Indians. This man has either
tired his horse, or lost himself in the plains. Some Indians are to
hunt for him.
Captain Clark, 3 August 1804
Set out early. Great appearance of wind and rain. I have observed
that thunder and lightning is not as common in this country as it is in
the Atlantic states. Snakes are not plenty; one was killed today,
large, and resembling the rattlesnake, only something lighter. I walked
on shore this evening, S.S. In pursuing some turkeys, I struck the
river twelve miles below within 370 yards. The high water passes
through this peninsula, and agreeable to the customary changes of the
river, I should conclude that in two years the main current of the
river will pass through. In every bend the banks are falling in from
the current being thrown against those bends by the sand points which
enlarge, and the soil, I believe, from unquestionable appearances of
the entire bottom, from one hill to the other, being the mud or ooze of
the river at some former period, mixed with sand and clay, easily melts
and slips into the river, and the mud mixes with the water, and the
sand is washed down and lodges on the points. Great quantities of
grapes on the banks. I observe three different kinds, at this time
ripe; one of the number is large and has the flavor of the purple
grape. Camped on the S.S. The mosquitoes very troublesome. The man who
went back after his knife has not yet come up. We have some reasons to
believe he has deserted.
Captain Clark, 5 August 1804
Last night at 8 o'clock a storm from the N.W. which lasted 3/4 of
an hour. Set out late this morning. Wind from the north. At one
o'clock, dispatched George Drouilliard, R. Fields, William Bratton, and
William Labiche back after the deserter, Reed, with order if he did not
give up peaceably to put him to death; to go to the Otos' village and
inquire for La Liberte, and bring him to the Maha village, also with a
speech on the occasion to the Otos and Missouris, and directing a few
of their chiefs to come to the Mahas, and we would make a peace between
them and the Mahas and Sioux, a string of wampum and a carrot of
tobacco. Proceeded on and camped on the S.S.
Captain Clark, 7 August 1804
Set out this morning at the usual time. At two miles, passed a bend
to L.S. choked up with snags. Our boat ran on two, in turning to pass
through. We got through with safety.
Captain Lewis took median altitude of the sun, made it 56¡ 9' 00",
latitude 41 ¡ 42' 34". And I took one man and went on shore. The man
killed an elk. I fired four times at one and did not kill him; my ball
being small, I think, was the reason. The mosquitoes so bad in the
prairies that with the assistance of a bush I could not keep them out
of my eyes. The boat turned several times today on sand bars. In my
absence, the boat passed an island two miles above the Little Sioux
River. On the upper point of this island, some hundreds of pelicans
were collected. They left three fish on the sand which were very fine.
Captain Lewis killed one and took his dimensions. I joined the boat and
we camped on the S.S. Worthy of remark that snakes are not plenty in
this part of the Missouri.
Captain Clark, 8 August l 804
About daylight this morning a hard wind from the N.W., with some
rain. Proceeded on around the right of the island.
A hard wind accompanied with rain from the S.E. After the rain was
over, Captain Lewis, myself, and ten men ascended the hill on the L.S.
(under which there were some fine springs) to the top of a high point
where the Maha king Blackbird was buried four years ago. [Died of
smallpox.] A mound of earth about 12 feet diameter at the base and 6
feet high is raised over him surfed, and a pole 8 feet high in the
center. On this pole we fixed a white flag, bound with red, blue, and
white. This hill about 300 feet above the water forming a bluff,
between that and the water, of various heights from 40 to 150
feet-yellow soft sandstone. From the top of this knoll, the river may
be seen meandering for 60 or 70 miles.
Captain Clark, l1 August l 804
A fine morning. Wind from the S.E. The men sent to the Maha town
last evening have not returned. We conclude to send a spy to know the
cause of their delay. At about 12 o'clock, the party returned and
informed us that they could not find the Indians, nor any fresh sign.
Those people have not returned from their buffalo hunt. Those people,
having no houses, no corn or anything more than the graves of their
ancestors to attach them to the old villager continue in pursuit of the
buffalo longer than others who have greater attachments to their native
villages.
The ravages of the smallpox, which swept off-about four years
ago-400 men and women and children in proportion, reduced this nation
not exceeding 300 men, and left them to the insults of their weaker
neighbors, which before were glad to be on friendly terms with them.
Captain Clark, 14 August 1804
I went with ten men to a creek dammed by the beavers about halfway
to the village. With some small willows and bark we made a drag, and
hauled up the creek, and caught 318 fish of different kinds, i.e.,
pike, bass, salmon, perch, red horse, small cat, and a kind of perch
called silverfish on the Ohio. I caught a shrimp precisely of shape,
size, and flavor of those about New Orleans and the lower part of the
Mississippi, in this creek, which is only the pass or straight from
[one] beaver pond to another and is crowded with large mussels. Very
fat ducks, plover of different kinds, are on those ponds as well as on
the river.
In my absence, Captain Lewis sent Mr. Dorion, the Sioux
interpreter, and three men to examine a fire which threw up an immense
smoke from the prairies on the N.E. side of the river, and at no great
distance from camp. The object of this party was to find some bands of
Sioux, which the interpreter thought were near the smoke, and get them
to come in. In the evening this party returned, and informed that the
fire arose from some trees which had been left burning by a small party
of Sioux who had passed [by that place] several days. The wind, setting
from that point, blew the smoke from that point over our camp. Our
party all in health and spirits. The men sent to the Otos and in
pursuit of the deserter, Reed, have not yet returned or joined our
party.
Captain Clark, Camp three miles N.E. of the Maha village, 15 August
1804
A very cool morning, the wind as usual from the N.W. Captain Lewis
took twelve men and went to the pond and creek between camp and the old
village, and caught upwards of 800 fine fish: 79 pike, 8 salmon
resembling trout [8 fish resembling salmon trout], 1 rock, 1 flat back,
127 buffalo and red horse, 4 bass, and 490 cats, with many small silver
fish and shrimp. I had a mast made and fixed to the boat today. The
party sent to the Otos not yet joined us. The wind shifted around to
the S.E. Every evening a breeze rises which blows off the mosquitoes
and cools the atmosphere.
Captain Clark, Fishing Camp 3 miles N.E. of the Mahas, 16 August
1804
A fine morning, the wind from the S.E. I collected a grass much
resembling wheat in its growth, the grain like rye, and also some
resembling rye and barley. A kind of timothy, the seed of which
branches from the main stalk and is more like a flaxseed than that of
timothy.
At six o'clock this evening, Labiche, one of the party sent to the
Otos, joined and informed that the party was behind with one of the
deserters, M. B. Reed, and the three principal chiefs of the Nations.
La Liberte they caught, but he deceived them and got away. The object
of those chiefs coming forward is to make peace with the Mahas through
us. As the Mahas are not at home, this great object cannot be
accomplished at this time. Set the prairies on fire to bring the Mahas
and Sioux if they were near, this being the usual signal.
A cool evening; two beaver caught today.
Captain Clark, 17 August 1804
A fine morning. Wind from the S.E. In the after part of the day,
the party with the Indians arrived. We met them under a shade near the
boat, and after a short talk we gave them provisions to eat and
proceeded to the trial of Reed. He confessed that he "deserted and
stole a public rifle, shot-pouch, powder and ball," and requested that
we would be as favorable with him as we could, consistently with our
oaths, which we were, and only sentenced him to run the gauntlet four
times through the party, and that each man with switches should punish
him, and for him not to be considered in future as one of the party.
The three principal chiefs petitioned for pardon for this man. After we
explained the injury such men could do them by false representations,
and explained the customs of our country, they were all satisfied with
the propriety of the sentence, and were witnesses to the punishment.
After which we had some talk with the chiefs about the origin of the
war between them and the Mahas,
Captain Lewis's birthday. The evening was closed with an extra gill
of whiskey, and a dance until 11 o'clock.
Captain Clark, 18 August 1804
A fine morning. Wind from the S.E. Prepared a small present for the
chiefs and warriors present. The main chief breakfasted with us and
begged for a sun glass. Those people are all naked, covered only with
breechclouts, blankets, or buffalo robes-the flesh side painted with
different colors and figures. At ten o'clock we assembled the chiefs
and warriors, nine in number, under an awning, and Captain Lewis and I
explained the speech sent to the nation from the Council Bluffs by Mr.
Faufon. The three chiefs and all the men or warriors made short
speeches approving the advice and council their Great Father had sent
them, and concluded by giving themselves some credit for their acts.
We then brought out the presents and exchanged The Big Horse's
medal and gave him one equal to the one sent to the Little Thief, and
gave all some small articles and eight carrots of tobacco. We gave one
small medal to one of the chiefs and a certificate to the others, of
their good intentions.
Names Great chiefs I have mentioned before. The Little Thief
The Big Horse Karkapaha-Missouri Crows Head, or Nenasawa-" Black
Cat, or Sarnanono-Oto Iron Eyes, or Neeswarunja- Big Ax [Ox], or
Stargeahunja- Big Blue Eyes Warsarshaco Brave Man, or
One of those Indians after receiving his certificate, delivered it
again to me-The Big Blue Eyes. The chief petitioned for the certificate
again. We would not give the certificate, but rebuked them very roughly
for having in object goods and not peace with their neighbors. This
language they did not like at first, but at length all petitioned for
us to give back the certificate to The Big Blue Eyes. He came forward
and made a plausible excuse. I then gave the certificate to the great
chief to bestow it to the most worthy. They gave it to him. We then
gave them a dram and broke up the council.
The chiefs requested we would not leave them this evening. We
determined to set out early in the morning. We showed them many
curiosities, and the air gun, which they were much astonished at. Those
people begged much for whiskey. Sergeant Floyd is taken very bad all at
once with a bilious colic. We attempt to relieve him without success as
yet. He gets worse and we are much alarmed at his situation. All
attention to him.
Captain Clark, 19 August 1804
Sergeant Floyd much weaker and no better. Made Mr. Faufon, the
interpreter, a few presents and the Indians a canister of whiskey. We
set out under a gentle breeze from the S.E., and proceeded on very
well. Sergeant Floyd as bad as he can be, no pulse, and nothing will
stay a moment on his stomach or bowels. Passed two islands on the S.S.
Sergeant Floyd died with a great deal of composure. Before his death,
he said to me, "I am going away-I want you to write me a letter." We
buried him on the top of the bluff a half mile below a small river to
which we gave his name. He was buried with the honors of war, much
lamented. A cedar post with the name: Sergeant C. Floyd died here
20th of August 1804
was fixed at the head of his grave. This man at all times gave us
proof of his firmness, and determined resolution to do service to his
country, and honor to himself. After paying all the honor to our
deceased brother, we camped in the mouth of Floyd's River, about 30
yards wide. A beautiful evening.
Captain Clark, 20 August 1804
Set out early. Wind from the south. At three miles, we landed at a
bluff where the two men sent with the horses were waiting with two
deer. By examination, this bluff contained alum, copperas, cobalt,
pyrites; an alum rock, soft and sand stone. Captain Lewis, in proving
the quality of those minerals, was near poisoning himself by the fumes
and taste of the cobalt, which had the appearance of soft isinglass.
Copperas and alum are very poisonous. Above this bluff a small creek
comes in from the L.S., passing under the cliff for several miles.
Captain Lewis took a dose of salts to work off the effects of the
arsenic. We camped on the S.S. Sailed the greater part of this day with
a hard wind from the S.E. Great deal of elk sign and great appearance
of wind from the N.W.
Ordered a vote for a sergeant to choose one of three which may be
the highest number. The highest numbers are P. Gass (had 19 votes),
Bratton, and Gibson.
Captain Clark, 22 August 1804
Set out this morning very early. The two men with the horses did
not come up last night. I walked on shore and killed a fat buck. J.
Fields sent out to hunt; came to the boat and informed that he had
killed a buffalo in the plain ahead. Captain Lewis took twelve men and
had the buffalo brought to the boat. In the next bend to the S.S., two
elk swam the river, and were fired at from the boat. R. Fields came up
with the horses and brought two deer. One deer killed from the boat.
Several prairie wolves seen today. Saw elk standing on the sand bar.
The wind blew hard and raised the sands off the bar in such clouds that
we could scarcely see. This sand, being fine and very light, stuck to
everything it touched, and in the plain for half a mile-the distance I
was out-every spire of grass was covered with sand or dirt.
Some rain last night. A continuation this morning. We set out at
the usual time and proceeded on the course of last night, to the
commencement of a blue clay bluff 180 or 190 feet high on the L.S.
Those bluffs appear to have been latterly on fire and at this time are
too hot for a man to bear his hand in the earth at any depth. Great
appearance of coal. An immense quantity of cobalt, or a crystalized
substance which answers its description, is on the face of the bluff.
Great quantities of a kind of berry resembling a currant, except
double the size, and grows on a bush like a privet, and the size of a
damson, deliciously flavored, and makes delightful tarts. This fruit is
now ripe. I took my servant (York) and a French boy and walked on
shore. Killed two buck elks and a fawn, and intercepted the boat, and
had all the meat butchered and in by sunset, at which time it began to
rain and rained hard. Captain Lewis and myself walked out and got very
wet. A cloudy, rainy night. In my absence, the boat passed a small
river, called by the Indians Whitestone River. This river is about 30
yards wide, and runs through a plain or prairie in its whole course.
In a northerly direction from the mouth of this creek, in an
immense plain, a high hill is situated, and appears of a conic form,
and by the different nations of Indians in this quarter, is supposed to
be the residence of devils: that they are in human form with remarkable
large heads, and about 18 inches high, that they are very watchful, and
are armed with sharp arrows with which they can kill at a great
distance. They are said to kill all persons who are so hardy as to
attempt to approach the hill. They state that tradition informs them
that many Indians have suffered by those little people, and, among
others, three Maha men fell a sacrifice to their merciless fury not
many years since. So much do the Maha, Sioux, Otos, and other
neighboring nations, believe this fable, that no consideration is
sufficient to induce them to approach the hill.
Captain Clark, 24 August 1804
A cloudy morning. Captain Lewis and myself concluded to go and see
the mound which was viewed with such terror by all the different
nations in this quarter. We selected Shields, J. Fields, W. Bratton,
Sergeant Ordway, J. Colter, Carr, and Corporal Warfington and Frazer,
also G. Drouilliard, and dropped down to the mouth of Whitestone River,
where we left the pirogue with two men; and, at 200 yards, we ascended
a rising ground of about 60 feet. From the top of this high land, the
country is level and open as far as can be seen, except some few rises
at a great distance, and the mound which the Indians call "Mountain of
little people, or spirits." This mound appears of a conic form, and is
N. 20¡ W. from the mouth of the creek. We left the river at 8 o'clock.
At 4 miles we crossed the creek, 23 yards wide, in an extensive valley,
and continued on two miles further.
Our dog was so heated and fatigued, we were obliged to send him
back to the creek. At 12 o'clock we arrived at the hill. Captain Lewis
much fatigued from heat-the day, it being very hot, and he being in a
debilitated state from the precautions he was obliged to take, to
prevent the effects of the cobalt and mineral substance which had like
to have poisoned him two days ago. His want of water, and several men
complaining of great thirst, determined us to make for the first water,
which was the creek in a bend N.E. from the mound, about three miles.
After a delay of about one hour and a half to recruit our party, we set
out on our return down the creek through the bottom, of about one mile
in width, crossed the creek three times to the place we first struck
it, where we gathered some delicious fruit, such as grapes, plums, and
blue currants. After a delay of an hour, we set out on our back trail,
and arrived at the pirogue at sunset. We proceeded on to the place we
camped last night, and stayed all night.
This mound is situated on an elevated plain in a level and
extensive prairie, bearing N. 20¡ W. from the mouth of Whitestone Creek
nine miles. The base of the mound is a regular parallelogram, the long
side of which is about 300 yards in length, the shorter 60 or 70 yards.
From the longer side of the base, it rises from the north and south,
with a steep ascent to the height of 65 or 70 feet, leaving a level
plain on the top 12 feet in width and 90 in length. The north and south
parts of this mound are joined by two regular rises, each in oval forms
of half its height, forming three regular rises from the plain. The
ascent of each elevated part is as sudden as the principal mound at the
narrower sides of its base.
The regular form of this hill would in some measure justify a
belief that it owed its origin to the hand of man; but as the earth and
loose pebbles and other substances of which it was composed bore an
exact resemblance to the steep ground which borders on the creek, in
its neighborhood, we concluded it was most probably the production of
nature.
The only remarkable characteristic of this hill, admitting it to be
a natural production, is that it is insulated or separated a
considerable distance from any other, which is very unusual in the
natural order or disposition of the hills.
The surrounding plains are open, void of timber, and level to a
great extent; hence the wind, from whatever quarter it may blow, drives
with unusual force over the naked plains and against this hill. The
insects of various kinds are thus involuntarily driven to the mound by
the force of the wind, or fly to its leeward side for shelter. The
small birds, whose food they are, consequently resort in great numbers
to this place in search of them-particularly the small brown martin, of
which we saw a vast number hovering on the leeward side of the hill,
when we approached it in the act of catching those insects. They were
so gentle that they did not quit the place until we had arrived within
a few feet of them.
One evidence which the Indians give for believing this place to be
the residence of some unusual spirits is that they frequently discover
a large assemblage of birds about this mound. This is, in my opinion, a
sufficient proof to produce in the savage mind a confident belief of
all the properties which they ascribe to it.
From the top of this mound, we beheld a most beautiful landscape.
Numerous herds of buffalo were seen feeding in various directions. The
plain to north, northwest, and northeast extends without interruption
as far as can be seen.
Captain Clark, 25 August 1804
The boat under the command of Sergeant Pryor proceeded on in our
absence (after jerking 1 the elk I killed yesterday) six miles, and
camped on the larboard side. R. Fields brought in five deer. George
Shannon killed an elk buck. Some rain this evening.
We set the prairies on fire as a signal for the Sioux to come to
the river.
Captain Clark, 25 August 1804
This morning the star called the morning star much larger than
common. G. Drouilliard came up and informed that he could neither find
Shannon nor horses. We sent Shields and J. Fields back to hunt Shannon
and the horses, with directions to keep on the hills to the Grand
Calumet above, on Riviere qui Court.
We set sail under a gentle breeze from the S.E. At seven miles,
passed a white clay marl or chalk bluff. Under this bluff, which is
extensive, I discovered large stone much like lime, encrusted with a
clear substance which I believe to be cobalt, also ore is embedded in
the dark earth resembling slate, but much softer. Above this bluff, we
had the prairie set on fire to let the Sioux see that we were on the
river, and as a signal for them to come to it.
At 2 o'clock, passed the mouth of river Jacques [or Yankton]. One
Indian at the mouth of this river swam to the pirogue. We landed and
two others came to us. Those Indians informed that a large camp of
Sioux were on River Jacques, near the mouth. We sent Sergeant Pryor and
a Frenchman with Mr. Dorion, the Sioux interpreter, to the camp with
directions to invite the principal chiefs to council with us at a bluff
above, called the Calumet. Two of those Indians accompanied them, and
the third continued in the boat showing an inclination to continue.
This boy is a Maha, and informs that his nation were gone to the
Pawnees to make a peace with that nation.
Captain Clark, 27 August 1804
Set out under a stiff breeze from the south, and proceeded on past
a willow island at two miles. Several sand bars. The river wide and
shallow. At four miles passed a short white bluff of about 70 or 80
feet high. Below this bluff the prairie rises gradually from the water,
back to the height of the bluff, which is on the starboard side. Here
the Indian who was in the boat returned to the Sioux camp on the
riverJacques. Captain Lewis and myself much indisposed owing to some
cause for which we cannot account. One of the pirogues ran a snag
through her and was near sinking, in the opinions of the crew. We came
to below the Calumet bluff and formed a camp in a beautiful plain near
the foot of the high land, which rises with a gradual ascent near this
bluff. I observe more timber in the valleys and on the points than
usual. The pirogue which was injured, I had unloaded, and the loading
put into the other pirogue, which we intended to send back, and changed
the crew. After examining her and finding that she was unfit for
service, determined to send her back by the party. Some load which was
in the pirogue much injured.
The wind blew hard this afternoon from the south. J. Shields and J.
Field, who were sent back to look for Shannon and the horses, joined us
and informed that Shannon had the horses ahead and that they could not
overtake him. This man not being a first-rate hunter, we determined to
send one man in pursuit of him, with some provisions.
Captain Clark, 28 August 1804
The commanding officers direct that the two messes who form the
crews of the pirogues shall select each one man from their mess for the
purpose of cooking, and that these cooks, as well as those previously
appointed to the messes of the barge crew, shall in future be exempted
from mounting guard, or any detail for that duty. They are therefore no
longer to be held on the roster. Orderly Book, 28 August 1804
Some rain last night and this morning. Sent on Colter with
provisions in pursuit of Shannon. Had a tow rope made of elkskin. I am
much engaged in writing. At four o'clock, P.M., Sergeant Pryor and Mr.
Dorion, with five chiefs and about 70 men and boys, arrived on the
opposite side. We sent over a pirogue, and Mr. Dorion and his son, who
was trading with the Indians, came over with Sergeant Pryor, and
informed us that the chiefs were there. We sent Sergeant Pryor and
young Mr. Dorion with some tobacco, corn, and a few kettles for them to
cook in, with directions to inform the chiefs that we would speak to
them tomorrow.
Those Indians brought with them, for their own use, 2 elk and 6
deer, which the young men killed on the way from their camp, twelve
miles distant.
Sergeant Pryor informs me that when they came near the Indian camp,
they were met by men with a buffalo robe to carry them. Mr. Dorion
informed they were not the owners of the boats and did not wish to be
carried. The Sioux's camps are handsome-of a conic form, covered with
buffalo robes painted different colors, and all compact and handsomely
arranged, covered all around. An open part in the center for the fire,
with buffalo robes. Each lodge has a place for cooking, detached. The
lodges contain from ten to fifteen persons. A fat dog was presented as
a mark of their great respect for the party, of which they partook
heartily, and thought it good and well flavored.
Captain Clark, 29 August 1804
A very thick fog this morning. After preparing some presents for
the chiefs, which we intended to make by giving medals, and finishing a
speech which we intended to give them, we sent Mr. Dorion in a pirogue
for the chiefs and warriors, to a council under an oak tree, near where
we had a flag flying on a high flagstaff. At 12 o'clock we met, and
Captain Lewis delivered the speech; and then made one great chief by
giving him a medal and some clothes; one second chief and three third
chiefs; in the same way. They received those things with the goods and
tobacco with pleasure. To the grand chief we gave a flag, and the
parole [certificate] and wampum with a hat and chief's coat. We smoked
out of the pipe of peace, and the chiefs retired to a bower, made of
bushes by their young men, to divide their presents, and smoke, eat,
and council. Captain Lewis and myself retired to dinner, and to consult
about other measures. Mr. Dorion is much displeased that we did not
invite him to dine with us-which he was sorry for afterward. The Sioux
are a stout, bold-looking people; the young men handsome and well made.
The greater part of them make use of bows and arrows. Some few fusees
[rifles] I observe among them, notwithstanding they live by the bow and
arrow. They do not shoot so well as the northern Indians. The warriors
are very much decorated with paint, porcupine quills and feathers,
large leggings and moccasins-all with buffalo robes of different
colors. The squaws wore petticoats and a white buffalo robe with the
black hair turned back over their necks and shoulders.
Captain Clark, 30 August 1804
After the Indians got their breakfast, the chiefs met and arranged
themselves in a row, with elegant pipes of peace all pointing to our
seats. We came forward, and took our seats. The great chief, The Shake
Hand, rose, and spoke at some length, approving what we had said, and
promising to pursue the advice.
Martoree, second chief (White Crane) rose and made a short speech,
and referred to the great chief, Parnarnearparbe (Struck by the
Pawnees). Third chief rose and made a short speech, Areawecharche (The
Half Man). Third chief rose and spoke at some length to the same
purpose. The other chief said but little. One of the warriors spoke,
after all were done, and promised to support the chiefs. They promised
to go and see their Great Father in the spring with Mr. Dorion, and to
do all things we advised them to do. And all concluded by telling the
distresses of their nation by not having traders, and wished us to take
pity on them. They wanted powder, ball, and a little milk. [Rum: "milk
of Great Father" means spirits.]
Last night the Indians danced until late in their dances. We gave
them [threw in to them as is usual] some knives, tobacco, and bells,
tape, and binding, with which they were satisfied.
We gave a certificate to two men of war, attendants on the chief.
Gave to all the chiefs a carrot of tobacco. Had a talk with Mr. Dorion,
who agreed to stay and collect the chiefs from as many bands of Sioux
as he could this fall, and bring about a peace between the Sioux and
their neighbors,
After dinner, we gave Mr. Peter Dorion a commission to act with a
flag and some clothes and provisions and instructions to bring about a
peace with the Sioux, Mahas, Pawnees, Poncas, Otos, and Missouris, and
to employ any trader to take some of the chiefs of each, or as many of
those nations as he could, particularly the Sioux, down to Washington.
I took a vocabulary of the Sioux language, and the answer to a few
queries such as referred to their situation, trade, number, war, This
nation is divided into twenty tribes, possessing separate interests.
Collectively, they are numerous-say from two to three thousand men.
Their interests are so unconnected that some bands are at war with
nations with which other bands are on the most friendly terms.
This great nation, whom the French have given the nickname of
Sioux, call themselves Dakota-Darcotar. Their language is not
peculiarly their own, they speak a great number of words which are the
same in every respect with the Maha, Ponca, Osage, and Kansas, which
clearly proves that those nations, at some period not more than a
century or two past, are of the same nation. Those Darcotars, or Sioux,
inhabit or rove over the country on the Red River of Lake Winnipeg, St.
Peters, and the west of the Mississippi, above Prairie du Chien, head
of River Des Moines, and the Missouri and its waters on the N. side for
a great extent. They are only at peace with eight nations, and,
agreeable to their calculation, at war with twenty-odd. Their trade
comes from the British, except this band and one on Des Moines who
trade with the traders of St. Louis. The Sioux rove and follow the
buffalo, raise no corn or anything else, the woods and prairies
affording a sufficiency. They eat meat, and substitute the ground
potato, which grows in the plains, for bread.
In the evening, late, we gave Mr. Dorion a bottle of whiskey, and
he, with the chiefs, and his son, crossed the river and camped on the
opposite bank. Soon after night, a violent wind from the N.W. with
rain. The rain continued the greater part of the night. The river
a-rising a little.
Captain Clark, 31 August 1804
Set out early. The wind blew hard from the south. Goats, turkeys
seen today. Passed a large island. Opposite this island near the head,
the Ponca River comes into the Missouri from the west. This river is
about 30 yards wide. Dispatched two men to the Ponca village, situated
in a handsome plain on the lower side of this creek, about two miles
from the Missouri. The Ponca nation is small and, at this time, out in
the prairies hunting the buffalo. One of the men sent to the village
killed a buffalo in the town, the other a large buck near it. Some sign
of the two men who are ahead.
Captain Clark, 5 September 1804
A very cold morning. Wind S.E. Set out at daylight. We landed after
proceeding 5 1/2 miles, near the foot of a round mountain, which I saw
yesterday, resembling a dome. Captain Lewis and myself walked up to the
top, which forms a cone and is about 70 feet higher than the high lands
around it. The base is about 300 feet. In descending this cupola,
discovered a village of small animals that burrow in the ground. (Those
animals are called by the French petit chien) Killed one, and caught
one alive, by pouring a great quantity of water in his hole.
We attempted to dig to the beds of one of those animals. After
digging 6 feet, found, by running a pole down, that we were not halfway
to his lodge. We found 2 frogs in the hole, and killed a dark
rattlesnake near with a ground rat [or prairie dog] in him. Those rats
are numerous. The village of those animals covered about 4 acres of
ground on a gradual descent of a hill, and contains great numbers of
holes on the top of which those little animals sit erect, and make a
whistling noise, and, when alarmed, step into their hole. We poured
into one of the holes 5 barrels of water without filling it.
Those animals are about the size of a small squirrel, shorter [or
longer] and thicker, the head much resembling a squirrel in every
respect, except the ears, which are shorter. His tail like a ground
squirrel, which they shake, and whistle when alarmed. The toenails
long. They have fine fur and the longer hair is gray. It is said that a
kind of lizard, also a snake, resides with those animals. [Did not find
this correct.] Camped.
Captain Clark, 7 September 1804
Set out at sunrise, and proceeded on past the head of the island,
on which we camped. Passed three sand and willow islands. The sand bars
so numerous, it is not worth mentioning them. The river shoal or
shallow. Wind S.E. Came to and camped on a sand bar on the L.S. Captain
Lewis went out to kill a buffalo. I walked on shore all this evening
with a view to kill a goat or some prairie dogs. In the evening after
the boat landed, I directed my servant, York, with me, to kill a
buffalo near the boat, from a number then scattered in the plains. I
saw at one view, near the river, at least 500 buffalo. Those animals
have been in view all day, feeding in the plains on the L.S. Every
copse of timber appears to have elk or deer. D. killed 3 deer, I killed
a buffalo, York 2, R. Fields one.
Captain Clark, 9 September 1804
A cloudy, dark morning. Set out early, a gentle breeze from the
S.E. Passed two small islands on the L.S., and one on the S.S. all in
the first course at l01/2 miles. Passed the lower point of an island
covered with red cedar, situated in a bend on the L.S. This island is
about 2 miles in length. Below this on a hill on the L.S. we found the
backbone of a fish, 45 feet long, tapering to the tail. Some teeth,
Those joints were separated, and all petrified. Opposite this island, 1
1/2 miles from the river on the L.S., is a large salt spring of
remarkably salt water. One other, high up the hill, 1/2 mile, not so
salt. We proceeded on, under a stiff breeze. Three miles above Cedar
Island, passed a large island on the S.S. No water on that side.
Several elk swam to this island. Passed a small island near the center
of the river, of a mile in length, and camped on one above, separated
from the other by a narrow channel. Those islands are called Mud
Islands. The hunters killed 3 buffalo and one elk today. The river is
falling a little. Great number of buffalo and elk on the hillside,
feeding. Deer scarce.
Captain Clark, 10 September 1804
A cloudy morning. Set out very early. The river wide, and shallow;
the bottom narrow, and the river crowded with sand bars. Passed the
island on which we lay, at one mile. Passed three islands-one on the
L.S., and two on the S.S. Opposite the island on the L.S., I saw a
village of barking squirrels [prairie dogs], 970 yards long and 800
yards wide, situated on a gentle slope of a hill. Those animals are
numerous. I killed four, with a view to have their skins stuffed.
Here, the man who left us with the horses, 22 [16] days ago, George
Shannon-he started 26th August, and has been ahead ever since-joined
us, nearly starved to death. He had been twelve days without anything
to eat but grapes and one rabbit, which he killed by shooting a piece
of hard stick in place of a ball. This man, supposing the boat to be
ahead, pushed on as long as he could. When he became weak and feeble,
determined to lay by and wait for a trading boat, which is expected,
keeping one horse for the last recourse. Thus a man had like to have
starved to death in a land of plenty for the want of bullets or
something to kill his meat.
We camped on the L.S., above the mouth of a run. A hard rain all
the afternoon, and most of the night, with hard wind from the N.W. I
walked on shore the fore part of this day, over some broken country,
which continues about three miles back, and then is level and rich-all
plains. I saw several foxes, and killed an elk and 2 deer, and
squirrels. The men with me killed an elk, 2 deer, and a pelican.
Captain Clark, 11 September 1804
This morning set out at an early hour and came to at 1/2 after 7
A.M. on the larboard shore 11/4 mile above the mouth of a small creek
which we named Corvus, in consequence of having killed a beautiful bird
of that genus near it. We concluded to lay by at this place the balance
of this day and the next, in order to dry our baggage, which was wet by
the heavy showers of rain which had fallen within the last three days,
and also to lighten the boat by transferring a part of her lading to
the red pirogue, which we now determined to take on with us to our
winter residence, wherever that might be. While some of the men were
employed in the necessary labor, others were dressing skins, washing
and mending their clothes,
Captain Clark and myself killed each a buck immediately on landing,
near our encampment. The deer were very gentle and in great numbers in
this bottom, which had more timber on it than any part of the river we
had seen for many days past, consisting of cottonwood, elm, some
different ash, and a considerable quantity of a small species of white
oak, which was loaded with acorns of an excellent flavor, having very
little of the bitter roughness of the nuts of most species of oak.
The leaf of this oak is small, pale green, and deeply indented. It
seldom rises higher than thirty feet, is much branched; the bark is
rough and thick, and of a light color. The cup which contains the acorn
is fringed on its edges, and embraces the nut about one-half. The
acorns were now falling, and we concluded that the number of deer which
we saw here had been induced thither by the acorns, of which they are
remarkably fond. Almost every species of wild game is fond of the
acorn-the buffalo, elk, deer, bear, turkeys, ducks, pigeons, and even
the wolves feed on them.
We sent three hunters out who soon added eight deer and two buffalo
to our stock of provisions. The buffalo were so poor that we took only
the tongues, skins, and marrow bones. The skins were particularly
acceptable as we were in want of a covering for the large pirogue to
secure the baggage. Captain Lewis, 16 September 1804
Having for many days past confined myself to the boat, I determined
to devote this day to amusing myself on shore with my gun, and view the
interior of the country lying between the river and the Corvus Creek.
Accordingly, before sunrise, I set out with six of my best hunters, two
of whom I dispatched to the lower side of Corvus Creek, two with orders
to hunt the bottoms and woodland on the river, while I retained two
others to accompany me in the intermediate country.
One quarter of a mile in rear of our camp, which was situated in a
fine open grove of cottonwood, passed a grove of plum trees, loaded
with fruit and now ripe. Observed but little difference between this
fruit and that of a similar kind common to the Atlantic states. The
trees are smaller and more thickly set. This forest of plum trees
garnish a plain about 20 feet more elevated than that on which we were
encamped.
This plain extends back about a mile to the foot of the hills one
mile distant, and to which it is gradually ascending. This plain
extends with the same breadth from the creek below to the distance of
nearly three miles above, parallel with the river, and it is entirely
occupied by the burrows of the barking squirrel heretofore described.
This animal appears here in infinite numbers. And the shortness and
verdure of grass gave the plain the appearance, throughout its whole
extent, of beautiful bowling green in fine order. Its aspect is S.E. A
great number of wolves of the small kind, hawks and some polecats were
to be seen. I presume that those animals feed on this squirrel. Found
the country in every direction, for about three miles, intersected with
deep ravines and steep irregular hills 100 to 200 feet high. At the
tops of these hills, the country breaks off as usual into a fine level
plain extending as far as the eye can reach. From this plain I had an
extensive view of the river below, and the irregular hills which border
the opposite sides of the river and creek.
The surrounding country had been burnt about a month before, and
young grass had now sprung up to a height of 4 inches, presenting the
live green of the spring; to the west a high range of hills stretch
across the country from N. to S., and appeared distant about 20 miles.
They are not very extensive, as I could plainly observe their rise and
termination. No rock appeared on them, and the sides were covered with
verdure similar to that of the plains. This scenery, already rich,
pleasing, and beautiful, was still further heightened by immense herds
of buffalo, deer, elk, and antelopes, which we saw in every direction,
feeding on the hills and plains. I do not think I exaggerate when I
estimate the number of buffalo which could be comprehended at one view
to amount to 3,000. My object was, if possible, to kill a female
antelope, having already procured a male. I pursued my route on this
plain to the west, flanked by my two hunters, until eight in the
morning, when I made the signal for them to come to me, which they did
shortly after.
We rested ourselves about half an hour, and regaled ourselves on
half a biscuit each, and some jerks of elk, which we had taken the
precaution to put in our pouches in the morning before we set out, and
drank of the water of a small pool, which had collected on the plain
from the rains which had fallen some days before. We had now, after
various windings in pursuit of several herds of antelope which we had
seen on our way, made the distance of about eight miles from our camp.
We found the antelope extremely shy and watchful, insomuch that we
had been unable to get a shot at them. When at rest they generally
select the most elevated point in the neighborhood, and as they are
watchful and extremely quick of sight, and their sense of smelling very
acute, it is almost impossible to approach them within gunshot. In
short, they will frequently discover, and flee from, you at the
distance of three miles.
I had this day an opportunity of witnessing the agility and the
superior fleetness of this animal which was to me really astonishing. I
had pursued and twice surprised a small herd of seven. In the first
instance they did not discover me distinctly, and therefore did not run
at full speed, though they took care before they rested to gain an
elevated point where it was impossible to approach them under cover,
except in one direction, and that happened to be in the direction from
which the wind blew toward them. Bad as the chance to approach them
was, I made the best of my way toward them, frequently peeping over the
ridge with which I took care to conceal myself from their view. The
male, of which there was but one, frequently encircled the summit of
the hill on which the females stood in a group, as if to look out for
the approach of danger. I got within about 200 paces of them when they
smelled me and fled. I gained the top of the eminence on which they
stood as soon as possible, from whence I had an extensive view of the
country. The antelopes, which had disappeared in a steep ravine, now
appeared at the distance of about three miles on the side of a ridge
which passed obliquely across me, and extended about four miles.
So soon had these antelopes gained the distance at which they had
again appeared to my view, I doubted at first that they were the same
that I had just surprised, but my doubts soon vanished when I beheld
the rapidity of their flight along the ridge before me. It appeared
rather the rapid flight of birds than the motion of quadrupeds. I think
I can safely venture the assertion that the speed of this animal is
equal, if not superior, to that of the finest blooded courser. Captain
Lewis, 17 September 1804
At half-past one o'clock this morning the sand bar on which we
camped began to undermine arid give way, which alarmed the sergeant on
guard. The motion of the boat awakened me. I got up and by the light of
the moon observed that the sand had given way both above and below our
camp, and was falling in fast. I ordered all hands on, as quick as
possible, and pushed off. We had pushed off but a few minutes before
the bank, under which the boat and pirogues lay, gave way, which would
certainly have sunk both pirogues. By the time we made the opposite
shore, our camp fell in.
We made a second camp for the remainder of the night, and at
daylight proceeded on to the gorge of this great bend, and breakfast.
We sent a man to measure (step off) the distance across the gorge. He
made it 2,000 yards. The distance around is 30 miles. The hills extend
through the gorge and are about 200 feet above the water. In the bend
as also the opposite sides, both above and below the bend, is a
beautiful inclined plain, in which there are great numbers of buffalo,
elk, and goats in view, feeding and sipping on those plains. Grouse,
larks, and the prairie bird are common in those plains.
We proceeded on, past a willow island below the mouth of a small
river, called Tylor's River, about 35 yards wide, which comes in on the
L.S. 6 miles above the gorge of the bend. At the mouth of this river,
the two hunters ahead left a deer and its skin, also the skin of a
white wolf. We observe an immense number of plover of different kinds
collecting and taking their flight southerly; also brants, which appear
to move in the same direction. The catfish are small and not so plenty
as below.
The shore on each side is lined with hard rough gulley stones of
different sizes, which have rolled from the hills and out of small
brooks. Cedar is common here. This day is warm. The wind, which is not
hard, blows from the S.E. We camped at the lower point of the Mock
Island on the S.S. This now connected with the mainland; it has the
appearance of once being an island detached from the mainland, covered
with tall cottonwood. We saw some camps and tracks of the Sioux which
appear to be old, three or four weeks ago. One Frenchman, I fear, has
got an abscess on his thigh. He complains very much. We are making
every exertion to relieve him.
The prairies in this quarter contain great quantities of prickly
pears. Captain Lewis, 21 September 1804
Passed an island situated nearest the S.S., immediately above the
last, called Cedar Island. This is about 1 l/2 miles long and nearly as
wide, covered with cedar. On the south side of this island, Mr. Loisel,
a trader from St. Louis, built a fort of cedar and a good house, to
trade with the Sioux, and wintered last winter. About this fort, I
observed a number of Indian camps in conical form. They fed their
horses on cotton limbs, as it appears. Here, our hunters joined us,
having killed two deer and a beaver. They complain much of the mineral
substances in the barren hills, over which they passed, destroying
their moccasins.
We proceeded on, and camped late on the S. side, below a small
island in the bend S.S., called Goat Island. The large stones which lay
on the sides of the banks in several places, lay some distance in the
river, under the water, and are dangerous.
I walked out this evening and killed a fine deer. The mosquitoes
are very troublesome in the bottoms. Captain Lewis, 22 September 1804
Set out under a gentle breeze from the S.E. Passed a small island
situated in a bend to the L.S. called Goat Island. A short distance
above the upper point, a creek 12 yards wide comes in on the S.S. We
observed a great smoke to the S.W. I walked on shore and observed
buffalo in great herds at a distance.
Passed two small willow islands with large sand bars making out
from them. Passed Elk Island, about 2 1/2 miles long and 3/4 mile wide,
situated near the L.S., covered with cottonwood; the red currants
called by the French gres de bueff, and grapes,
The river is nearly straight for a great distance, wide and
shallow. Passed a creek on the S.S. 16 yards wide, we call Reuben Creek
as R. Fields found it. Camped on the S.S., below the mouth of a creek
on the L.S. Three Sioux boys came to us-swam the river and informed
that the band of Sioux called the Tetons, of 80 lodges, were camped at
the next creek above; and 60 lodges more a short distance above. We
gave those boys two carrots of tobacco to carry to their chiefs, with
directions to tell them that we would speak to them tomorrow.
Captain Lewis walked on shore this evening. R. F. killed a doe
goat.
Captain Clark, 23 September 1804
Set out early. A fair day, the wind from the E. Passed the mouth of
a creek on the L.S. called Creek High Water.
Passed a large island on the L.S. about 2 miles and 1/2 long on
which Colter had camped and killed 4 elk. The wind fair from the S.E.
We prepared some clothes and a few medals for the chiefs of the Tetons'
bands of Sioux, which we expect to see today at the next river.
Observed a great deal of stone on the sides of the hills on the S.S. We
saw one hare today. Prepared all things for action in case of
necessity. Our pirogues went to the island for the meeting. Soon after,
the man on shore ran up the bank and reported that the Indians had
stolen the horse.
We soon after met 5 Indians, and anchored out some distance, and
spoke to them. Informed them we were friends, and wished to continue
so, but were not afraid of any Indians. Some of their young men had
taken the horse sent by their Great Father for their chief, and we
would not speak to them until the horse was returned to us again.
Passed an island on the S.S., on which we saw several elk, about 1
1/z miles long, called Good Humored Island. Came to about 1 1/2 miles
above, off the mouth of a small river about 70 yards wide, called by
Mr. Evans the Little Missouri River. The tribes of the Sioux called the
Tetons are camped about two miles up on the N.W. side; and we shall
call the river after that nation, Teton. This river is 70 yards wide at
the mouth of water, and has a considerable current. We anchored off the
mouth.
The French pirogue came up early in the day; the other did not get
up until the evening. Soon after we had come to, I went and smoked with
the chiefs who came to see us here. All well. We prepare to speak with
the Indians tomorrow, at which time, we are informed, the Indians will
be here. The Frenchman, who had for some time been sick, began to
bleed, which alarmed him. Two-thirds of our party camped on board, the
remainder-with the guard-on shore.
Captain Clark, 24 September 1804
A fair morning. The wind from the S.E. All well. Raised a flagstaff
and made an awning or shade on a sand bar in the mouth of Teton River,
for the purpose of speaking with the Indians under. The boat crew on
board at 70 yards distance from the bar. The five Indians which we met
last night continued. About 11 o'clock, the 1st and 2nd chiefs came. We
gave them some of our provisions to eat. They gave us great quantities
of meat, some of which was spoiled: We feel much at a loss for the want
of an interpreter; the one we have can speak but little.
Met in council at 12 o'clock and, after smoking-agreeable to the
usual custom-Captain Lewis proceeded to deliver a speech which we were
obliged to curtail for want of a good interpreter. All our party
paraded. Gave a medal to the grand chief, called in Indian
Untongarsarbar, in French Boeuf Noir, Black Buffalo. Said to be a good
man. 2nd chief, Tortohongar or The Partisan-bad. The 3rd is the Boenf
de MŽdecine, his name is Tartongarwaker. 1st considerable man,
Warzinggo. 2nd considerable man, Second Bear-Matocoquepar.
Invited those chiefs on board to show them our boat, and such
curiosities as were strange to them. We gave them 1/4 glass of whiskey,
which they appeared to be very fond of; sucked the bottle after it was
out and soon began to be troublesome' one, the second chief, assuming
drunkenness as a cloak for his rascally intentions. I went with those
chiefs, in one of the pirogues with 5 men-3 and 2 Indians (which left
the boat with great reluctance)-to shore, with a view of reconciling
those men to us.
As soon as I landed the pirogue, three of their young men seized
the cable of the pirogue [in which we had presents, The chiefs' soldier
[each chief has a soldier] hugged the mast, and the 2nd chief was very
insolent, both in words and gestures [pretended drunkenness and
staggered up against me], declaring I should not go on, stating he had
not received presents sufficient from us. His gestures were of such a
personal nature, I felt myself compelled to draw my sword, and made a
signal to the boat to prepare for action. At this motion Captain Lewis
ordered all under arms in the boat. Those with me also showed a
disposition to defend themselves and me. The grand chief then took hold
of the rope and ordered the young warriors away.
I felt myself warm and spoke in very positive terms.
Most of the warriors appeared to have their bows strung, and took
out their arrows from the quiver. As I, being surrounded, was not
permitted by them to return, I sent all the men except two interpreters
to the boat. The pirogue soon returned with about 12 of our determined
men ready for any event. This movement caused a number of the Indians
to withdraw at a distance, leaving their chiefs and soldiers alone with
me. Their treatment to me was very rough and, I think, justified
roughness on my part. They all left my pirogue, and counciled with
themselves. The result I could not learn, and nearly all went off after
remaining in this situation some time. I offered my hand to the 1st and
2nd chiefs, who refused to receive it. I turned off and went with my
men on board the pirogue. I had not proceeded more than ten paces
before the 1st chief, 3rd, and 2 Brave Men waded in after me. I took
them in and went on board.
We proceeded on about one mile, and anchored out off a willow
island. Placed a guard on shore to protect the cooks and a guard in the
boat. Fastened the pirogues to the boat. I called this island Bad
Humored Island, as we were in a bad humor.
Captain Clark, 25 September 1804
Set out early. Proceeded on, and came to, by the wish of the
chiefs, for to let their squaws and boys see the boat, and suffer them
to treat us well. Great numbers of men, women, and children on the
banks viewing us. These people show great anxiety. They appear
sprightly. Generally ill-looking and not well made; their legs and arms
small generally; high cheekbones, prominent eyes. They grease and black
[paint] themselves with coal when they dress. The distinguished men
make use of hawks' feathers [calumet feather adorned with porcupine
quills and fastened to the top of the head and falls backward about
their heads]. The men wear a robe, and each a polecat's skin, for to
hold their bois roulŽ for smoking. Fond of dress and show. Badly armed
with fusees, The squaws are cheerful, fine-looking women, not handsome;
high cheeks; dressed in skins; a petticoat and robe, which folds back
over their shoulder, with long wool. Do all their laborious work, and,
I may say, perfect slaves to the men, as all squaws of nations much at
war, or where the women are more numerous than the men.
After coming to, Captain Lewis and 5 men went on shore with the
chiefs, who appeared disposed to make up and be friendly. After Captain
Lewis had been on shore about 3 hours, I became uneasy for fear of
deception, and sent a sergeant to see him and know his treatment, which
he reported was friendly, and they were preparing for a dance this
evening. They made frequent solicitations for us to remain one night
only and let them show their good disposition toward us. We determined
to remain.
After the return of Captain Lewis, I went on shore. On landing, I
was received on an elegant painted buffalo robe, and taken to the
village by 6 men, and was not permitted to touch the ground until I was
put down in the grand council house, on a white dressed robe. I saw
several Maha prisoners, and spoke to the chiefs, telling them that it
was necessary to give those prisoners up and become good friends with
the Mahas if they wished to follow the advice of their Great Father. I
was in several lodges, neatly formed, as before mentioned as to the
Bois BrulŽ-Yankton tribe.
This house formed a 3/4 circle of skins well dressed, and sewn
together, under this shelter. About 70 men sat, forming a circle. In
front of the chiefs, a place of 6 feet diameter was clear, and the pipe
of peace raised on forked sticks, about 6 or 8 inches from the ground,
under which there was swansdown scattered. On each side of this circle,
two pipes, the two flags of Spain 2 and the flag we gave them in front
of the grand chief. A large fire was near, in which provisions were
cooking. In the center, about 400 pounds of excellent buffalo beef as a
present for us.
Soon after they set me down, the men went for Captain Lewis.
Brought him in the same way, and placed him also by the chief. In a few
minutes an old man rose and spoke, approving what we had done, and
informing us of their situation, requesting us to take pity on them and
which was answered. The great chief then rose with great state,
speaking to the same purpose as far as we could learn, and then, with
great solemnity, took up the pipe of peace and, after pointing it to
the heavens, the four quarters of the globe and the earth, he made some
dissertation [then made a speech], lit it and presented the stem to us
to smoke. When the principal chief spoke with the pipe of peace, he
took in one hand some of the most delicate parts of the dog which was
prepared for the feast, and made a sacrifice to the flag.
After a smoke had taken place, and a short harangue to his people,
we were requested to take the meal, and they put before us the dog
which they had been cooking, and pemmican, and ground potato in several
platters. Pemmican is buffalo meat dried or jerked, pounded, and mixed
with grease, raw. Dog, Sioux think great dish, used on festivals. Ate
little of dog--pemmican and potato good. We smoked for an hour, till
dark, and all was cleared away. A large fire made in the center. About
ten musicians playing on tambourines [made of hoops and skin,
stretched], long sticks with deer and goats' hoofs tied so as to make a
jingling noise, and many others of a similar kind. Those men began to
sing and beat on the tambourine. The women came forward, highly
decorated in their way, with the scalps and trophies of war of their
fathers, husbands, brothers, or near connections, and proceeded to
dance the War Dance which they did with great cheerfulness, until about
twelve o'clock, when we informed the chiefs that they must be fatigued
amusing us,
They then retired, and we, accompanied by four chiefs, returned to
our boat. They stayed with us all night. Those people have some brave
men which they make use of as soldiers. Those men attend to the
policing of the village; correct all errors. I saw one of them, today,
whip two squaws who appeared to have fallen out. When he approached,
all about appeared to flee with great terror. At night they keep 2, 3,
4, 5 men at different distances, walking around camp, singing the
occurrences of the night.
All the men on board, 100 paces from shore. Wind from the S.E.,
moderate. One man very sick on board with a dangerous abscess on his
hip. All in spirits this evening.
In this tribe, I saw 25 squaws and boys taken 13 days ago in a
battle with the Mahas. In this battle, they destroyed 40 lodges, killed
75 men, and some boys and children, and took 48 prisoners-women and
boys-which they promise both Captain Lewis and myself shall be
delivered up to Mr. Dorion at the Bois BrulŽ tribe. Those are a
wretched and dejected-looking people. The squaws appear low and coarse,
but this is an unfavorable time to judge of them.
Captain Clark, 26 September 1804
I rose early after a bad night's sleep. Found the chiefs all up,
and the bank, as usual, lined with spectators. We gave the two great
chiefs a blanket apiece, or rather, they took off, agreeable to their
custom, the one they lay on; and each, one peck of corn. After
breakfast, Captain Lewis and the chiefs went on shore, as a very large
part of their nation was coming in, the disposition of whom I did not
know. One of us being sufficient on shore, I wrote a letter to Mr. P.
Dorion, and prepared a medal and some certificates, and sent to Captain
Lewis. At two o'clock Captain Lewis returned with four chiefs and a
Considerable Man, named Warchapa, or On His Guard. When the friends of
those people (the Sioux) die, they run arrows through their flesh above
and below their elbows, as a testimony of their grief.
After staying about half an hour, I went with them on shore. Those
men left the boat with reluctance. I went first to the 2nd chief's
lodge, where a crowd came around. After speaking on various subjects, I
went to a principal man's lodge, from them to the grand chief's lodge.
After a few minutes, he invited me to a lodge within the circle, in
which I stayed with all their principal men until the dance began,
which was similar to the one of last night, performed by their women
with poles in their hands, on which scalps of their enemies were hung.
Some with the guns spears, and war implements taken by their husbands,
in their hands.
Captain Lewis came on shore, and we continued until we were sleepy
and returned to our boat. The 2nd chief and one principal man
accompanied us. Those two Indians accompanied me on board in the small
pirogue; Captain Lewis, with a guard, still on shore. The man who
steered, not being much accustomed to steer, passed the bow of the
boat, and the pirogue came broadside against the cable and broke it,
which obliged me to order, in a loud voice, all hands up and at their
oars. My peremptory order to the men, and the bustle of their getting
to their oars, alarmed the chiefs, together with the appearance of the
men on shore as the boat turned. The chief hallooed and alarmed the
camp or town, informing them that the Mahas were about, attacking them.
In about ten minutes the bank was lined with men armed, the 1st chief
at their head. About 200 men appeared, and after about half an hour
returned, all but about 60 men, who continued on the bank all night.
The chiefs continued all night with us. This alarm I, as well as
Captain Lewis, considered as the signal of their intentions-which was
to stop our proceeding on our journey and, if possible, rob us. We were
on our guard all night. The misfortune of the loss of our anchor
obliged us to lie under a falling bank much exposed to the
accomplishment of their hostile intentions. Peter Cruzat, our bowman,
who could speak Maha, informed us in the night that the Maha prisoners
informed him we were to be stopped. We showed as little signs of a
knowledge of their intentions as possible. All prepared on board for
anything which might happen. We kept a strong guard all night. No
sleep.
Captain Clark, 27 September 1804
Made many attempts in different ways to find our anchor, but could
not; the sand had covered it. From the misfortune of last night, our
boat was lying at shore in a very unfavorable situation. After finding
that the anchor could not be found, we determined to proceed on. With
great difficulty, got the chiefs out of our boat; and when we were
about setting out, the class called the soldiers took possession of the
cable. The 1st chief, who was still on board, intended to go a short
distance with us. I told him the men of his nation sat on the cable. He
went out and told Captain Lewis, who was at the bow, the men who sat on
the rope were soldiers and wanted tobacco. Captain Lewis would not
agree to be forced into anything. The 2nd chief demanded a flag and
tobacco, which we refused to give, stating proper reasons to them for
it. After much difficulty, which had nearly reduced us to the necessity
for hostilities, I threw a carrot of tobacco to 1st chief. Took the
port fire from gunner. Spoke so as to touch his pride. The chief gave
the tobacco to his soldiers, and he jerked the rope from them, and
handed it to the bowman. We then set out under a breeze from the S.E.
About two miles up, we observed the 3rd chief on shore, beckoning to
us. We took him on board. He informed us the rope was held by the order
of the 2nd chief, who was a double-spoken man. Soon after, we saw a man
coming full speed through the plains; left his horse, and proceeded
across a sand bar near the shore. We took him on board and observed
that he was the son of the chief we had on board. We sent, by him, a
talk to the nation, stating the cause of our hoisting the red flag
under the white. If they were for peace, stay at home and do as we had
directed them. If they were for war, or were determined to stop us, we
were ready to defend ourselves. We halted one hour and one-half on the
S.S. and made a substitute of stones for an anchor, refreshed our men,
and proceeded on about two miles higher up, and came to a very small
sand bar in the middle of the river, and stayed all night. I am very
unwell for want of sleep. Determined to sleep tonight if possible. The
men cooked, and we rested well.
Captain Clark, 28 September 1804
Set out early. Some bad sand bars. Proceeded on. At 9 o'clock we
observed the 2nd chief and 2 principal men, one man, and a squaw on
shore. They wished to go up with us as far as the other part of their
band, which, they said, was on the river ahead not far distant. We
refused, stating very sufficient reasons, and were plain with them on
the subject. They were not pleased. Observed that they would walk on
shore to the place we intended to camp tonight. We observed it was not
our wish that they should; for, if they did, we could not take them or
any other Tetons on board, except the one we had now with us, who might
go on shore whenever he pleased. They proceeded on. The chief on board
asked for a twist of tobacco for those men. We gave him 1/2 of a twist,
and sent one by them for that part of their band which we did not see,
and continued on. Saw great numbers of elk at the mouth of a small
creek-called No Timber Creek, as no timber appeared to be on it. Above
the mouth of this creek, an Arikara band had a village five years ago.
No remains, but the mound which surrounded the town. The 2nd chief came
on the sand bar and requested we would put him across the river. I sent
a pirogue and crossed him and one man to the S.S., and proceeded on,
and came to on a sand bar about l/2 mile on, from the main shore, and
put on it two sentinels. Continued all night at anchor. We substitute
large stones for anchors in place of the one we lost. All in high
spirits,
Captain Clark, 29 September 1804
Set out this morning early. Had not proceeded on far before we
discovered an Indian running after us. He came up with us at 7 o'clock
and requested to come on board and go up to the Arikaras. We refused to
take any of that band on board. If he chose to proceed on shore it was
very well. Soon after, I discovered on the hills, at a great distance,
great numbers of Indians which appeared to be making to the river above
us. We proceeded on under a double-reefed sail and some rain. At 9
o'clock, observed a large band of Indians, the same which I had before
seen on the hills, encamping on the bank on the L.S. We came to on a
sand bar, breakfasted, and proceeded on, and cast the anchor opposite
their lodge, at about 100 yards distant, and informed the Indians,
which we found to be a part of the band we had before seen, that we
took them by the hand and sent to each chief a carrot of tobacco, as we
had been treated badly by some of the band below. After staying 2 days
for them, we could not delay any time, and referred them to Mr. Dorion
for a full account of us, and to hear our talk sent by him to the
Tetons. Those were very solicitous for us to land and eat with them,
that they were friendly, We apologized and proceeded on. Sent the
pirogue to shore above, with the tobacco, and delivered it to a soldier
of the chief with us. Several of them ran up the river. The chiefs on
board threw them out a small twist of tobacco, and told them to go back
and open their ears. They received the tobacco and returned to their
lodges. We saw great numbers of white gulls. This day is cloudy and
rainy. Refreshed the men with a glass of whiskey after breakfast.
We saw about 6 miles above, 2 Indians who came to the bank, and
looked at us about 1/2 an hour, and went over the hills to the S.W. We
proceeded on under a very stiff breeze from the S.E. The stern of the
boat got fast on a log and the boat turned and was very near filling
before we got her righted, the waves being very high. The chief on
board was so frightened at the motion of the boat, which in its rocking
caused several loose articles to fall on the deck from the lockers, he
ran off and hid himself. We landed. He got his gun and informed us he
wished to return, that all things were clear for us to go on, we would
not see any more Tetons, We repeated to him what had been said before,
and advised him to keep his men away. Gave him a blanket, a knife and
some tobacco. Smoked a pipe and he set out. We also set sail, and came
to at a sand bar, and camped. A very cold evening. All on guard.
Sand bars are so numerous that it is impossible to describe them,
and think it unnecessary to mention them.
Captain Clark, 30 September 1804
The wind blew hard all last night from the S.E. Very cold. Set out
early, the wind still hard. Passed a large island in the middle of the
river. Opposite the lower point of this island, the Arikaras formerly
lived in a large town on the L.S.- remains only a mound, circular,
walls three or four feet high. Above the head of the island about two
miles, we passed the River Chien, or Dog River [Cheyenne] L.S. This
river comes in from the S.W. and is about 400 yards wide. The current
appears gentle, throwing out but little sand, and appears to throw out
but little water. The head of this river is not known. In the second
range of the C™te Noire its course, generally, about east. So called
from the Cheyenne Indians who live on the head of it. A part of the
nation of Dog Indians live some distance up this river, the precise
distance I can't learn. Above the mouth of this river, the sand bars
are thick and the water shallow. The river still very wide and falling
a little. We are obliged to haul the boat over a sand bar, after making
several attempts to pass. The wind so hard, we came to and stayed three
hours. After it slackened a little, we proceeded on round a bend, the
wind in the after part of the day, ahead. Passed a creek on the L.S.
which we call the Sentinel. This part of the river has but little
timber, the hills not so high, the sand bars more numerous, and river
more than one mile wide, including the sand bars. Passed a small creek
above the latter, which we call Lookout Creek. Continued on, with the
wind immediately ahead, and came to on a large sand bar in the middle
of the river. We saw a man opposite to our camp on the L.S. which we
discovered to be a Frenchman. A little off from shore, among the
willows, we observed a house. We called to them to come over. A boy
came in a canoe and informed that two Frenchmen were at the house with
goods to trade with the Sioux, which he expected down from the Arikaras
6 every day. Several large parties of Sioux set out from the "Rees"
[Arikaras] for this place to trade with those men.
This Mr. Jean VallŽ informs us that he wintered last winter 300
leagues up the Cheyenne River under the Black Mountains. He informs us
that this river is very rapid and difficult even for pirogues to
ascend, and when rising the swells are very high. One hundred leagues
up, it forks; one fork comes from the S., the other, at 40 leagues
above the forks, enters the Black Mountains. The country from the
Missouri to the Black Mountains is much like the country on the
Missouri, less timber and a great proportion of cedar.
The Black Mountains, he says, are very high, and some parts of them
have snow on them in the summer. Great quantities of pine grow on the
mountains. A great noise is heard frequently on those mountains. No
beaver on Dog River. On the mountains great numbers of goats, and a
kind of animal with large circular horns; this animal is nearly the
size of a small elk. White [Grizzly] bears are also plenty. The
Cheyenne Indians are about 300 lodges. They inhabit this river
principally, and steal horses from the Spanish settlements to the S.W.
This excursion they make in one month. The bottoms and sides of River
Cheyenne are coarse gravel. This Frenchman gives an account of a
white-booted turkey [prairie cock], an inhabitant of the C™te Noire.
Captain Clark, 1 October 1804
A violent wind all night from the S.E. Slackened a little and we
proceeded on. Mr. Jean VallŽ came on board and proceeded on two miles
with us. A very cold morning. Some black clouds flying. Took a meridian
altitude and made the latitude 44¡ 19' 36" North. This was taken at the
upper part of the gorge of the Lookout Bend, the Sentinel. Heard a shot
over the hills to the L.S. during the time we were dining on a large
sand bar. The after part of this day is pleasant. At two o'clock,
opposite a wood on the larboard side, we observed some Indians on a
hill on the S.S. One came down to the river opposite to us and fired
off his gun, and beckoned to us to come to. We paid no attention to
him. He followed on some distance. We spoke a few words to him. He
wished us to go ashore, and to his camp, which was over the hill, and
consisted of twenty lodges. We excused ourselves. Advised him to go and
hear our talk of Mr. Dorion. He inquired for traders. We informed him
one was in the next bend below, and parted. He returned, and we
proceeded on. Passed a large island on the S.S. Here we expected the
Tetons would attempt to stop us, and under that idea we prepared
ourselves for action, which we expected every moment. Opposite this
island, on the L.S. a small creek comes in. This island we call Island
of Caution. We took in some wood on a favorable situation where we
could defend our men on shore, and camped on a sand bar half a mile
from the main shore. The wind changed to the N.W., and rose very high,
and cold, which continued. The current of the Missouri is less rapid
and contains much less sediment, of the same color.
Captain Clark, 2 October 1804
The wind blew all night from the N.W. Some rain. We were obliged to
drop down 3 miles to get the channel sufficiently deep to pass up.
Several Indians on the shore viewing of us, called to us to land. One
of them gave 3 yells and skipped a ball before us. We paid no attention
to him. Proceeded on and came to on the L.S. to breakfast. One of those
Indians swam across to us, begged for powder. We gave him a piece of
tobacco, and set him over on a sand bar, and set out. The wind hard
ahead. Passed an island in the middle of the river about 3 miles in
length, we call Good Hope Island. At 4 miles, passed a creek on the
L.S. about 12 yards wide. Captain Lewis and 3 men walked on shore, and
crossed over to an island situated on the S.S. of the current, and near
the center of the river. This island is about 1 1/2 miles long and
nearly half as wide. In the center of this island was an old village of
the Arikaras, called Lahoocatt. It was circular and walled, containing
17 lodges, and it appears to have been deserted about five years. The
island contains but little timber. We camped on the sand bar making
from this island. The day very cool.
Captain Clark, 4 October 1804
Frost this morning. We set out early and proceeded on. Passed a
small creek on the L.S. At 7 o'clock heard some yells. Proceeded on.
Saw three Indians of the Teton band. They called to us to come on
shore. Begged some tobacco. We answered them as usual and proceeded on.
Saw a gang of goats [antelope] swimming across the river, out of which
we killed four. They were not fat. We came to and camped on a mud bar
making from the S.S. The evening is calm and pleasant. Refreshed the
men with a glass of whiskey.
Captain Clark, 5 October 1804
A cool morning. Wind from the north. Set out early. Passed a willow
island situated near the S. shore at the upper point of some timber on
the S.S. Many large round stones near the middle of the river. Those
stones appear to have been washed from the hills. Passed a village of
about 80 neat lodges, covered with earth and picketed around. Those
lodges are spacious-of an octagon form, as close together as they can
possibly be placed, and appear to have been inhabited last spring. From
the canoes of skins, mats, buckets, found in the lodges, we are of
opinion they were the Arikaras. We found squashes of three different
kinds growing in the village.
One of our men killed an elk close by this village. I saw two
wolves in pursuit of another, which appeared to be wounded and nearly
tired. We proceeded on. Found the river shallow. We made several
attempts to find the main channel between the sand bars, and were
obliged at length to drag the boat over to save a league which we must
return to get into the deepest channel. We have been obliged to hunt a
channel for some time past, the river being divided in many places in a
great number of channels. Saw geese, swan, brants, and ducks of
different kinds on the sand bars today. Captain Lewis walked on shore.
Saw great num bers of prairie hens. I observe but few gulls or plover
in this part of the river.
Captain Clark, 6 October 1804
A cloudy morning. Some little rain frost last night. We set out
early. Proceeded on 2 miles to the mouth of a river on the L.S., and
breakfasted. This river when full is 90 yards wide. The water is at
this time confined within 20 yards; the current appears gentle. This
river throws out but little sand. At the mouth of this river we saw the
tracks of white bear, which were very large. I walked up this river a
mile. Below the mouth of this river are the remains of an Arikara
village, or wintering camp fortified in a circular form of about 60
lodges, built in the same form as those passed yesterday. This camp
appears to have been inhabited last winter. Many of their willow and
straw mats, baskets, and buffalo-skin canoes remain entire within the
camp. The Arikaras call this river Surwarkarna, or Park.
From this river, which heads in the first of the Black Mountains,
we proceeded on under a gentle breeze from the S.W At 10 o'clock, we
saw 2 Indians on the S.S. They asked for something to eat.
Captain Clark, 7 October 1804
A cool morning. Set out early, the wind from the N.W. Proceeded on,
passed the mouth of a small creek on the L.S. About 2 1/2 miles above
Grouse Island, passed a willow island which divides the current
equally. Passed the mouth of a river called by the Arikaras Wetarhoo,
on the L.S. This river is 120 yards wide, the water of which, at this
time, is confined within 20 yards, discharging but a small quantity,
throwing out mud with small proportion of sand. Great quantities of the
red berries, resembling currants, are on the river at every bend. 77¡
33' 00". Latitude from the observation of today at the mouth of this
river [heads in the Black Mountains] is 45¡ 39' 5" North. Proceeded on
past a small river 25 yards wide called Rampart or Beaver Dam River.
This river (Maropa) is entirely choked up with mud, with a stream of
one inch diameter passing through, discharging no sand. At one mile,
passed the lower point of an island close on the L.S.
Two of our men discovered the Arikara village, about the center of
the island on the L. side on the main shore. This island is about three
miles long, separated from the L.S. by a channel about 60 yards wide,
very deep. The island is covered with fields, where those people raise
their corn, tobacco, beans Great numbers of those people came on the
island to see us pass. We passed above the head of the island, and
Captain Lewis, with two interpreters and two men, went to the village.
I formed a camp of the French and the guard, on shore, with one
sentinel on board of the boat, at anchor. A pleasant evening. All
things arranged, both for peace or war. This village is situated about
the center of a large island near the L. side, and near the foot of
some high, bald, uneven hills.
Several Frenchmen came up with Captain Lewis in a pirogue, one of
which is a Mr. Gravelines (employee of the trader Regis Loisel), a man
well versed in the language of this nation, and gave us some
information relative to the country, nation,
Captain Clark, 8 October 1804
Robert Frazer being regularly enlisted and having become one of the
Corps of Volunteers for North-Western Discovery, he is therefore to be
viewed and respected accordingly, and will be annexed to Sergeant
Gass's mess.
Wm. Clark. Capt. Meriwether Lewis Capt. 1st Regiment, U. S. Infty.
River Maropa, 9th of October 1804
Orderly Book [Clark], 8 October 1804
A windy, rainy night, and cold-so much so we could not speak with
the Indians today. The three great chiefs and many others came to see
us today. We gave them some tobacco, and informed them we would speak
tomorrow. The day continued cold and windy, some rain. Sorry. Canoes of
skins passed down from the two villages a short distance above, and
many came to view us all day, much astonished at my black servant, who
did not lose the opportunity of displaying his powers, strength, This
nation never saw a black man before.
Several hunters came in with loads of meat. I observed several
canoes made of a single buffalo skin, with three squaws, cross the
river today in waves as high as I ever saw on this river-quite
uncomposed. I have a slight pleurisy this evening. Very cold,
Captain Clark, River Maropa, 9 October 1804
A fine morning. Wind from the S.E. At about 11 o'clock the wind
shifted to the N.W. We prepare all things ready to speak to the
Indians. Mr. Tabeau and Mr. Gravelines came to breakfast with us. The
chiefs, came from the lower town, but none from the two upper towns,
which are the largest. We continue to delay and wait for them. At
twelve o'clock, dispatched Gravelines to invite them to come down. We
have every reason to believe that a jealousy exists between the
villages for fear of our making the first chief of the lower village.
At one o'clock, the chiefs all assembled, and after some little
ceremony, the council commenced. We informed them what we had told the
others before, i.e., Otos and Sioux. Made three chiefs, one for each
village. Gave them presents. After the council was over, we shot the
air gun, which astonished them much. They then departed, and we rested
secure all night. Those Indians were much astonished at my servant.
They never saw a black man before. All flocked around him and examined
him from top to toe. He carried on the joke and made himself more
terrible than we wished him to do. Those Indians are not fond of
spirits- liquor of any kind.
Captain Clark, 10 October 1804
A fine morning. The wind from the S.E. At 11 o'clock we met the
Grand Chief in council, and he made a short speech, thanking us for
what we had given him and his nation, promising to attend to the
counsel we had given him, and informed us the road was open and no one
dare shut it, and we might depart at pleasure. At 1 o'clock we set out
for the upper villages 3 miles distant, the grand chief and nephew on
board. Proceeded on. At 1 mile, took in the 2nd chief, and came to off
the second village, separated from the third by a creek. After
arranging all matters, we walked up with the second chief to his
village and sat, talking on various subjects, until late. We also
visited the upper, or third, village-each of which gave us something to
eat in their way, and a few bushels of corn, beans, After being treated
with every civility by those people, who are both poor and dirty, we
returned to our boat at about 10 o'clock P.M., informing them, before
we departed, that we would speak to them tomorrow at their separate
villages. Those people gave us to eat bread made of corn and beans,
also corn and beans boiled: a large bean of which they rob the mice of
the prairie-who collect and discover it-which is rich and very
nourishing; also squashes, All tranquillity.
Captain Clark, 11 October 1804
I rose early. After breakfast we joined the Indians who were
waiting on the bank for us to come out and go and counsel. We
accordingly joined them, and went to the house of the 2nd chief,
Lassel, where there were many chiefs and warriors, and they made us a
present of about 7 bushels of corn, a pair of leggings, a twist of
their tobacco, and seeds of two kinds of tobacco. We sat some time
before the council commenced. This man spoke at some length, declaring
his disposition to believe and pursue our counsels, his intension of
going to visit his Great Father, acknowledged the satisfaction in
receiving the presents, raising a doubt as to the safety in passing the
nations below [downstream] particularly the Sioux. Requested us to take
a chief of their nation and make a good peace with the Mandans and
nations above. After answering those parts of the 2nd chief's speech
which required it, which appeared to give general satisfaction, we went
to the village of the 3rd chief and, as usual, some ceremony took place
before he could speak to us on the great subject. This chief spoke very
much in the same style on nearly the same subjects as the other chief,
who sat by his side, more sincerely and pleasantly. He presented us
with about 10 bushels of corn, some beans and squashes, all of which we
accepted with much pleasure. After we had answered his speech, and
given them some account of the magnitude and power of our country,
which pleased and astonished them very much, we returned to our boat.
The chiefs accompanied us on board. We gave them some sugar, a little
salt, and a sun glass, and set 2 on shore, and the third proceeded on
with us to the Mandans. At 2 o'clock we set out, the inhabitants of the
two villages viewing us from the banks. We proceeded on about 9 l/2
miles and camped on the S.S. at some woods. The evening clear and
pleasantly cool.
The nation of the Arikaras is about 600 men (Mr. Tabeau says; I
think 500 men [Mr. Tabeau is right]) able to bear arms. A great
proportion of them have fusees. They appear to be peaceful. Their men
tall and proportioned, women small and industrious, raise great
quantities of corn, beans, simlins,[summer squash] also tobacco for the
men to smoke. They collect all the wood and do the drudgery, as is
common among savages.
Two villages are made up of ten [nine] different tribes of the
Pawnees, who had formerly been separate, but by commotion and war with
their neighbors have become reduced, and compelled to come together for
protection. The corruption of the language of those different tribes
has so reduced the language that the different villages do not
understand all the words of the others.
Those people are dirty, kind, poor, and extravagant, possessing
national pride, not beggarly, receive what is given with great
pleasure, live in warm houses, large and built in an octagon form,
forming a cone at top which is left open for the smoke to pass. Those
houses are generally 30 or 40 feet in diameter, covered with earth on
poles-willows and grass to prevent the earth passing through. Those
people express an inclination to be at peace with all nations. The
Sioux, who trade the goods which they get of the British traders for
their corn and have great influence over the Arikaras, poison their
minds and keep them in perpetual dread.
A curious custom with the Sioux, as well as the Arikaras, is to
give handsome squaws to those whom they wish to show some
acknowledgments to. The Sioux we got clear of without taking their
squaws. They followed us with squaws two days. The Arikaras we put off
during the time we were at the towns, but two handsome young squaws
were sent by a man to follow us. They came up this evening and
persisted in their civilities.
Dress of the men of this nation is simply a pair of moccasins,
leggings, flap in front, and a buffalo robe, with their hair, arms, and
ears decorated.
The women wore moccasins, leggings fringed, and a shirt of goat
skins, some with sleeves. This garment is long and generally white and
fringed, tied at the waist, with a robe. In summer, without hair.
Captain Clark, 12 October 1804
One man, J. Newman, confined for mutinous expression. Set out
early. Proceeded on. Passed a camp of Sioux on the S.S. Those people
only viewed us and did not speak one word. The visitors of last
evening, all except one, returned, which is the brother of the chief we
have on board.
Passed a creek about 15 yards wide on the L.S. We call after the
second chief, Pocasse, or "Hay." Nearly opposite this creek, a few
miles from the river, on the S.S., are two stones resembling human
persons and one resembling a dog, situated in the open prairie. To
those stones the Arikaras pay great reverence and make offerings
whenever they pass (information of the chief and interpreter). Those
people have a curious tradition of those stones. One was a man in love,
one a girl whose parents would not let them marry. The man, as is
customary, went off to mourn. The female followed. The dog went to
mourn with them. All turned to stone gradually, commencing at the feet.
Those people fed on grapes until they turned, and the woman ha, a bunch
of grapes yet in her hand. On the river near the place those are said
to be situated, we obtained a greater quantity of fine grapes than I
ever saw at one place.
We tried the prisoner Newman last night by 9 of his peers. They did
"sentence him 75 lashes and disbanded from the party." [Newman did
remain with the party, but he would be merely a worker and not have
guard duty.]
Captain Clark, 13 October 1804
Some rain last night. All wet and cold. We set out early. The rain
continued all day. At [blank] miles we passed a creek on the L.S., 15
yards wide. This creek we call after the 3rd chief, Piaheto, or Eagle's
Feather. At 1 o'clock we halted on a sand bar, and, after dinner,
executed the sentence of the court-martial so far as giving the
corporal punishment; and proceeded on a few miles. The wind ahead from
N.E. Camped in a cove of the bank on the S.S. immediately opposite our
camp on the L.S. I observe an ancient fortification, the walls of which
appear to be 8 or 10 feet high, most of it washed in. The evening wet
and disagreeable. The river something wider. More timber on the banks.
The punishment of this day alarmed the Indian chief very much. He
cried aloud, or affected to cry. I explained the cause of the
punishment and the necessity for it. He also thought examples were
necessary, and he himself had made them by death. His nation never
whipped even their children, from their birth.
Captain Clark, 14 October 1804
Rained all last night. We set out early and proceeded on. At 3
miles passed an Indian camp, of Arikara hunters, on the S.S. We halted
above, and about 30 of the Indians came over in their canoes of skins.
We ate with them. They gave us meat. In return, we gave fish hooks, and
some beads. About a mile higher, we came to on the L.S. At the camp of
the Arikaras of about 8 lodges, we also ate and they gave some meat. We
proceeded on. Saw numbers of Indians on both sides, passing a creek.
Saw many curious hills, high, and much the resemblance of a house with
a tripped roof, like ours. At 12 o'clock it cleared away, and the
evening was pleasant. Wind from the N.E. At sunset we arrived at a camp
of Arikaras of 10 lodges on the S.S. We came to, and camped near them.
Captain Lewis and myself went with the chief who accompanies us to the
huts of several of the men, all of whom smoked and gave us something to
eat, also some meat to take away. Those people were kind and appeared
to be much pleased at the attention paid them.
Those people are much pleased with my black servant. Their women
very fond of caressing our men,
Captain Clark, 15 October 1804
Some rain this morning. Two young squaws very anxious to accompany
us. We set out with our chief on board, by name Arketarnashar, or Chief
of the Town. Captain Lewis and the Indian chief walked on shore. Soon
after, I discovered great numbers of goats in the river, and Indians on
the shore on each side. As I approached, or got nearer, I discovered
boys in the water killing the goats with sticks and hauling them to
shore. Those on the banks shot them with arrows, and as they approached
the shore, would turn them back. Of this gang of goats I counted 58
which they had killed on the shore. One of our hunters out with Captain
Lewis killed three goats. We passed the camp on the S.S., and proceeded
1/2 mile, and camped on the L.S. Many Indians came to the boat to see.
Some came across late at night. As they approached, they hallooed and
sang. After staying a short time, two went for some meat, and returned
in a short time with fresh and dried buffalo, also goat. Those Indians
stayed all night. They sang, and were very merry the greater part of
the night.
Captain Clark, 16 October 1804
Set out early. A fine morning. The wind from the N.W. After
breakfast, I walked on shore with the Indian chief and interpreters.
Saw buffalo, elk, and great numbers of goats in large gangs. (I am told
by Mr. G. that those animals winter in the Black Mountains to feed on
timber, And this is about the season they cross from the east of the
Missouri to go to that mountain. They return in the spring and pass the
Missouri in great numbers, to the plains. This chief tells me of a
number of their traditions about turtles, snakes, and the power of a
particular rock or cove on the next river, which informs of everything.
None of those, I think worth while mentioning. The wind so hard ahead,
the boat could not move after 10 o'clock. Captain Lewis took the
altitude of the sun, Latitude 46¡ 23' 57". I killed 3 deer, and the
hunters with me killed 3 also. The Indian shot one but could not get
it. I scaffolded up the deer, and returned and met the boat after
night, on the L.S., about 6 miles above the place we camped last night.
One of the men saw a number of snakes. Captain Lewis saw a large beaver
house S.S. I caught a whippoorwill, small and not common. The leaves
are falling fast. The river wide and full of sand bars. Great numbers
of very large stones on the sides of the hills, and some rock of a
brownish color in the L. bend below this.
Great numbers of goats are flocking down to the S. side of the
river, on their way to the Black Mountains, where they winter. Those
animals return in the spring in the same way and scatter in different
directions.
Captain Clark, 17 October 1804
Set out early. Proceeded on. At 6 miles, passed the mouth of Le
Boulet, or Cannon Ball River, about 140 yards wide on the L.S. This
river heads in the C™te Noire or Black Mountains. A fine day. Above the
mouth of the river, great numbers of stone, perfectly round, with fine
grit, are in the bluff and on the shore. The river takes its name from
those stones, which resemble cannon balls. The water of this river is
confined within 40 yards. We met two Frenchmen in a pirogue, descending
from hunting, and complained of the Mandans robbing them of four traps,
their furs, and several other articles. Those men were in the employ of
our Arikara interpreter, Mr. Gravelines. They turned and followed us.
Note: The Arikaras are not fond of spirituous liquors, nor do they
appear to be fond of receiving any or thankful for it. They say we are
no friends or we would not give them what makes them fools.
Captain Clark, 18 October 1804
Set out early this morning and proceeded on. The wind from the S.E.
After breakfast I walked out on the L. side to see those remarkable
places pointed out by Evans (John Evans, a Welshman who came to America
to investigate the legend of "Welsh Indians.") I saw an old remains of
a village, covering 6 or 8 acres, on the side of a hill which the chief
with ToonŽ tells me that nation lived in. Two villages, one on each
side of the river, and the troublesome Sioux caused them to move about
40 miles higher up, where they remained a few years, and moved to the
place they now live. Passed a small creek on the S.S. and one on the
L.S. Passed an island covered with willows Iying in the middle of the
river. No current on the L.S. Camped on the L.S. above a bluff
containing coal of an inferior quality. This bank is immediately above
the old village of the Mandans. The country is fine, the high hills at
a distance with gradual ascents. I killed 3 deer. The timber, confined
to the bottoms as usual, is much larger than below. Great numbers of
buffalo, elk, and deer, goats. Our hunters killed 10 deer and a goat
today, and wounded a white bear. I saw several fresh tracks of those
animals which are 3 times as large as a man's track. The wind hard all
day from the N.E. and E. Great numbers of buffalo swimming the river. I
observe near all large gangs of buffalo, wolves, and when the buffalo
move, those animals follow, and feed on those that are killed by
accident, or those that are too poor, or fat, to keep up with the gang.
Captain Clark, 20 October 1804
A very cold night. Wind hard from the N.E. Some rain in the night
which froze as it fell. At daylight it began to snow and continued all
the fore part of the day. Passed, just above our camp, a small river on
the L.S., called by the Indians, Chisschetar. This river is about 38
yards wide, containing a good deal of water. Some distance up this
river is situated a stone which the Indians have great faith in, and
say they see, painted on the stone, all the calamities and good fortune
to happen to the nation, and parties who visit it. A tree, an oak,
which stands alone near this place- about 2 miles off-in the open
prairie, which has withstood the fire, they pay great respect to: Make
holes and tie strings through the skin of their necks and around this
tree, to make them brave. All this is the information of ToonŽ (Is a
Whippoorwill), the chief of the Arikaras, who accompanied us to the
Mandans. At 2 miles, passed the second village of the Mandans, which
was in existence at the same time with the first. This village is at
the foot of a hill on the S.S. in a beautiful and extensive plain, at
this time covered with buffalo. Nearly opposite is another village in a
bottom, the other side of the Missouri. I killed a fine buffalo. We
camped on the L.S., below an old Mandan village, having passed another
up a creek 3 miles below on the S.S. Very cold. Ground covered with
snow. One otter killed.
Last night at 1 o'clock, I was violently and suddenly attacked with
the rheumatism in the neck, which was so violent I could not move.
Captain Lewis applied a hot stone wrapped in flannel, which gave me
some temporary ease. We set out early; the morning cold. At 7 o'clock,
we came to at a camp of Teton Sioux on the L.S. Those people, 12 in
number, were naked, and had the appearance of war. We have every reason
to believe that they are going, or have been, to steal horses from the
Mandans. They tell two stories. We gave them nothing. After taking
breakfast, proceeded on. My neck is yet very painful, at times-spasms.
Passed old Mandan village, near which we lay-another at 4 miles; one at
8 miles at mouth of large creek 4 miles farther, all on larboard side.
The mounds, 9 in number, along river within 20 miles; the fallen-down
earth of the houses, some teeth and bones of men and animals mixed in
these villages. Human skulls are scattered in these villages.
Camped on the L. side. Passed an island situated on the L. side, at
the head of which we passed a bad place, and Mandans' village S.S., 2
miles above. The hunters killed a buffalo bull. They say out of about
300 buffalo which they saw, they did not see one cow. Great deal of
beaver sign. Several caught every night.
Captain Clark, 21 October 1804
A cloudy morning. Some snow. Set out early. Passed five lodges
which were deserted, the fires yet burning. We suppose those were the
Indians who robbed the 2 French trappers a few days ago. Those 2 men
are now with us, going up with a view to getting their property from
the Indians, through us. Cold and cloudy. Camped on the L.S. of the
river.
Captain Clark, 23 October 1804
Set out early. A cloudy day. Some little snow in the morning. I am
something better of the rheumatism in my neck. A beautiful country on
both sides of the river: the bottoms covered with woods. We have seen
no game on the river today, a proof of the Indians hunting in the
neighborhood. Passed an island on the S.S., made by the river cutting
through a point, by which the river is shortened several miles. On this
island we saw one of the grand chiefs of the Mandans, with five lodges,
hunting. This chief met the chief of the Arikaras who accompanied us,
with great cordiality and ceremony. Smoked the pipe, and Captain Lewis,
with the interpreter, went with the chiefs to his lodges at 1 mile
distant. After his return, we admitted the grand chief and his brother
for a few minutes on our boat. Proceeded on a short distance, and
camped on the S.S., below the old village of the Mandans and Arikaras.
Soon after our landing, 4 Mandans came from a camp above. The Arikaras'
chief went with them to their camp.
Captain Clark, 24 October 1804
A cold morning. Set out early under a gentle breeze from the S.E.
by E. Proceeded on. Passed the 3rd old village of the Mandans which has
been deserted for many years. This village was situated on an eminence
of about 40 feet above the water on the L.S. Back for several miles is
a beautiful plain. At a short distance above this old village, on a
continuation of the same eminence was situated the Arikaras' village.
Two old villages of Arikaras, one on top of high hill, the second
below, in the bottom, which have been evacuated only six [five] years.
About 3 or 4 miles above Arikaras' villages are 3 old villages of
Mandans near together. Here they lived when the Arikaras came for
protection-afterward moved where they now live. Above this village, a
large and extensive bottom for several miles in which the squaws raised
their corn. But little timber near the villages. On the S.S., below, is
a point of excellent timber, and in the point several miles above is
fine timber.
Several parties of Mandans rode to the river on the S.S. to view
us. Indeed they are continually in sight, satisfying their curiosities
as to our appearance, We are told that the Sioux have latterly fallen
in with and stolen the horses of the Big Bellies [Gros Ventres]. On
their way home they fell in with the Assiniboines, who killed them and
took the horses. A Frenchman has latterly been killed by the Indians,
on the track to the trading establishment on the Assiniboine River in
the north of this place (or British fort). This Frenchman has lived
many years with the Mandans.
We were frequently called on to land and talk to parties of the
Mandans on the shore.
Wind shifted to the S.W. at about 11 o'clock, and blew hard until 3
o'clock. Clouded up. River full of sand bars, and we are at a great
loss to find the channel of the river. Frequently run on the sand bars,
which delays us much. Passed a very bad riffle of rocks in the evening,
by taking the L.S. of a sand bar, and camped on a sand point on the
S.S. opposite a high hill on the L.S. Several Indians came to see us
this evening-among others, the son of the great chief of the
Mandans-mourning for his father. This man has his two little fingers
off. On inquiring the cause, was told it was customary for this nation
to show their grief by some testimony of pain, and that it was not
uncommon for them to take off 2 smaller fingers on the hand, at the
second joints, and sometimes more, with other marks of savage
affection.
The wind blew very hard this evening from the S.W. Very cold. R.
Fields with the rheumatism in his neck. P. Cruzat with the same
complaint in his legs. The party otherwise is well. As to myself, I
feel but slight symptoms of that disorder at this time.
Captain Clark, 25 October 1804
Set out early. Wind from the S.W. Proceeded on. Saw numbers of the
Mandˆns on shore. We set the Arikara chief on shore and we proceeded on
to the camp of two of their grand chiefs, where we delayed a few
minutes, with the chiefs, and proceeded on, taking two of their chiefs
on board, and some of the heavy articles of his household, such as
earthen pots and corn. Proceeded on. At this camp saw a Mr. McCracken,
Englishman from the N.W. [North-West] Company. This man came nine days
ago to trade for horses and buffalo robes-one other man came with him.
The Indians continued on the banks all day. But little wood on this
part of the river. Many sand bars and bad places. Water much divided
between them.
We came to and camped on the L.S. about 1/2 a mile below the first
Mandan town on the L.S. Soon after our arrival, many men, women and
children flocked down to see us. Captain Lewis walked to the village
with the principal chiefs and our interpreters. My rheumatic complaint
increasing, I could not go. If I had been well, only one would have
left the boat and party until we knew the disposition of the Indians. I
smoked with the chiefs who came after. Those people appeared much
pleased with the corn mill which we were obliged to use, and was fixed
in the boat.
We set out early. Came to at the village on the L.S. This village
is situated on an eminence about 50 feet above the water in a handsome
plain. It contains [blank] houses in a kind of picket work. The houses
are round and very large, containing several families, and also their
horses, which are tied on one side of the entrance. A description of
those houses will be given hereafter. I walked up and smoked a pipe
with the chiefs of the village. They were anxious that I would stay and
eat with them. My indisposition prevented my eating, which displeased
them, until a full explanation took place. I returned to the boat and
sent two carrots of tobacco for them to smoke, and proceeded on. Passed
the second village, and camped opposite the village of the Wetersoons,
or Ahwahharways, which is situated on an eminence in a plain on the
L.S. This village is small and contains but few inhabitants. Above this
village, also above the Knife River on the same side of the Missouri,
the Big Bellies' towns are situated. A further description will be
given hereafter, as also of the town of the Mandans on this side of the
river, i.e., S. side.
A fine warm day. We met with a Frenchman, by the name of Jussome,
whom we employ as an interpreter. This man has a wife and children in
the village. Great numbers on both sides flocked down to the bank to
view us as we passed. Captain Lewis, with the interpreter, walked down
to the village below our camp. After delaying one hour, he returned and
informed me the Indians had returned to their village, We sent three
twists of tobacco by three young men to the three villages above,
inviting them to come down and counsel with us tomorrow. Many Indians
came to view us. Some stayed all night in the camp of our party. We
procured some information of Mr. Jussome, about the chiefs of the
different nations.
Captain Clark, 27 October 1804
A windy day, fair and clear. Many of the Gros Ventres- or Big
Bellies-and Wetersoons came to see us and hear the council. The wind
being so violently hard from the S.W. prevented our going into council.
Indeed the chiefs of the Mandans from the lower village could not
cross. We made up the presents, and entertained several of the curious
chiefs who wished to see the boat, which was very curious to them,
viewing it as great medicine [whatever is mysterious or unintelligible
is called great medicine]-as they also viewed my black servant.
The Black Cat, great chief of the Mandans, Captain Lewis, and
myself, with an interpreter, walked up the river about 1 1/2 miles. Our
views were to examine the situation and timber for a fort. We found the
situation good but the timber scarce; or at least, small timber such as
would not answer us. We consulted the grand chief in respect to the
other chiefs of the different villages. He gave the names of 12. George
Drouilliard caught 2 beaver above our camp last night. We had several
presents from the women of corn, boiled hominy, soft corn, I presented
a jar [earthen jar, glazed] to the chief's wife, who received it with
much pleasure.
Our men very cheerful this evening. We sent the chiefs of the Gros
Ventres to smoke a pipe with the grand chief of the Mandans in his
village, and told them we would speak tomorrow.
Captain Clark, 28 October 1804
A fair fine morning. After breakfast we were visited by the old
chief of the Big Bellies. This man was old and had transferred his
power to his son, who was then out at war against the Snake Indians,
who inhabit the Rocky Mountains. At 10 o'clock the S.W. wind rose very
high. We collected the chiefs and commenced a council, under an awning
and our sails stretched around to keep out as much wind as possible. We
delivered a long speech, the substance of which was similar to what we
had delivered to the nations below.
The old chief of the Gros Ventres was very restless before the
speech was half ended, observed that he could not wait long, that his
camp was exposed to the hostile Indians, He was rebuked by one of the
chiefs for his uneasiness at such a time as the present. At the end of
the speech, - we mentioned the Arikara who accompanied us to make a
firm peace. They all smoked with him. I gave this chief a dollar of the
American coin, as a medal, with which he was much pleased. In council,
we presented him with a certificate of his sincerity and good conduct,
We also spoke about the fur which was taken from two Frenchmen by a
Mandan, and informed of our intentions of sending back the French
hands.
After the council, we gave the presents with much ceremony, and put
the medals on the chiefs we intended to make, viz., one for each town,
to whom we gave coats, hats, and flags, one grand chief to each nation,
to whom we gave medals with the President's likeness. In council, we
requested them to give us an answer tomorrow, or as soon as possible,
on some points which required their deliberation. After the council was
over, we shot the air gun, which appeared to astonish the natives much.
The greater part then retired soon after.
The Arikara chief, Arketarnashar, came to me this evening and tells
me that he wishes to return to his village and nation. I put him off,
saying tomorrow we would have an answer to our talk to their
satisfaction and send by him a string of wampum informing what had
passed here. An iron, or steel corn mill which we gave to the Mandans
was very thankfully received. The prairie was set on fire (or caught by
accident) by a young man of the Mandans. The fire went with such
velocity that it burned to death a man and woman, who could not get to
any place of safety. One man, a woman, and child much burned, and
several narrowly escaped the flame.
A boy half white was saved unhurt in the midst of the flame. These
ignorant people say this boy was saved by the Great Medicine Spirit
because he was white. The cause of his being saved was a green buffalo
skin thrown over him by his mother, who perhaps had more foresight for
the protection of her son, and less for herself, than those who escaped
the flame. The fire did not burn under the skin, leaving the grass
around the boy. This fire passed our camp last night about eight
o'clock, P.M. It went with great rapidity and looked tremendous.
We sent the presents intended for the grand chief of the
Minnetaree, or Big Belly, and the presents, flag, and wampum by the old
chief, and those intended for the chief of the lower village by a young
chief.
Captain Clark, 29 October 1804
Two chiefs came to have some talk: one the principal of the lower
village, the other the one who thought himself the principal man, and
requested to hear some of the speech that was delivered yesterday. They
were gratified; and we put the medal on the neck of The Big White, to
whom we had sent clothes yesterday, and a flag. Those men did not
return from hunting in time to join the council. They were well
pleased. (Second of those is a Cheyenne.) I took 8 men in a small
pirogue and went up the river as far as the first island, about 7
miles, to see if a situation could be got on it for our winter
quarters. Found the wood on the island, as also on the point above, so
distant from the water that I did not think that we could get a good
wintering ground there; and as all the white men here informed us that
wood was scarce, as well as game above, we determined to drop down a
few miles near wood and game.
On my return, found many Indians at our camp. Gave the party a
dram. They danced, as is very common in the evening, which pleased the
savages much. Wind S.E. A fine morning. The chief of the Mandans sent a
second chief to invite us to his lodge to receive some corn and hear
what he had to say. I walked down and, with great ceremony, was seated
on a robe by the side of the chief. He threw a handsome robe over me,
and after smoking the pipe with several old men around, the chief
spoke:
Said he believed what we had told them, and that peace would be
general, which not only gave him satisfaction but all his people: they
could now hunt without fear, and their women could work in the fields
without looking every moment for the enemy; and put off their moccasins
at night. [Sign of peace: undress.] As to the Arikaras, we will show
you that we wish peace with all, and do not make war on any without
cause. That chief-pointing to the second-and some brave men will
accompany the Arikara chief now with you to his village and nation, to
smoke with that people. When you came up, the Indians in the
neighboring vil1ages, as well as those out hunting, when they heard of
you, had great expectations of receiving presents. Those hunting,
immediately on hearing, returned to the village; and all were
disappointed, and some dissatisfied. As to himself, he was not much so;
but his village was. He would go and see his Great Father,
He had put before me two of the steel traps which were robbed from
the French a short time ago, and about twelve bushels of corn, which
were brought and put before me by the women of the village. After the
chief finished and smoked in great ceremony, I answered the speech,
which satisfied them very much, and returned to the boat. Met the
principal chief of the third village, and the Little Crow, both of whom
I invited into the cabin, and smoked and talked with for about one
hour.
Soon after those chiefs left us, the grand chief of the Mandans
came, dressed in the clothes we had given, with his two small sons, and
requested to see the men dance, which they very readily gratified him
in. The wind blew hard all the after part of the day from the N.E., and
continued all night to blow hard from that point. In the morning it
shifted N.W. Captain Lewis wrote to the N.W. Company's agent on the
Assiniboine River [fort, there, about 150 miles hence] about nine days'
march north of this place.
Captain Clark, 31 October 1804
The wind hard from the N.W. Mr. McCracken, a trader, set out at 7
o'clock, to the fort on the Assiniboine. By him sent a letter
(enclosing a copy of the British Minister's protection) to the
principal agent of the Company.
At about 10 o'clock, the chiefs of the lower village came, and
after a short time informed us they wished we would call at their
village and take some corn; that they would make peace with the
Arikaras; they never made war against them but after the Arikaras
killed their chiefs. They killed them like birds, and were tired of
killing them, and would send a chief and some brave men to the Arikaras
to smoke with that people.
In the evening we set out, and fell down to the lower village,
where Captain Lewis got out and continued at the village until after
night. I proceeded on, and landed on the S.S. at the upper point of the
first timber on the starboard side. After landing and continuing all
night, dropped down to a proper place to build. Captain Lewis came down
after night, and informed me he intended to return the next morning, by
the particular request of the chiefs.
We passed the villages on our descent, in view of great numbers of
the inhabitants.
Captain Clark, 1 November 1804
This morning at daylight, I went down the river with 4 men, to look
for a proper place to winter. Proceeded down the river three miles, and
found a place well supplied with wood, and returned. Captain Lewis went
to the village to hear what they had to say, and I fell down, and
formed a camp, near where a small camp of Indians were hunting. Cut
down the trees around our camp. In the evening, Captain Lewis returned
with a present of 11 bushels of corn. Our Arikara chief set out,
accompanied by one chief of Mandans and several brave men of
Minnetarees and Mandans. He called for some small article which we had
promised, but as I could not understand him, he could not get it.
[Afterward he did get it.] The wind from the S.E. A fine day. Many
Indians to view us today.
Captain Clark, 2 November 1804
A fine morning. We continued to cut down trees and raise our
houses. A Mr. Charbonneau (husband of Sacagwea), interpreter for the
Gros Ventre nation, came to see us, and informed that he came down with
several Indians from a hunting expedition up the river, to hear what we
had told the Indians in council. This man wished to hire as an
interpreter. The wind rose this evening from the east, and clouded up.
Great numbers of Indians pass, hunting, and some on the return.
Captain Clark, 4 November 1804
I rose very early and commenced raising the two ranges of huts. The
timber large and heavy, all to carry on hand sticks (stout sticks used
to carry a log) cottonwood, and elm, some ash, small. Our situation
sandy. Great numbers of Indians pass to and from hunting. A camp of
Mandans a few miles below us. Caught, within two days, 100 goats, by
driving them in a strong pen, directed by a bush fence widening from
the pen, The greater part of this day cloudy, wind moderate from the
N.W. I have the rheumatism very bad. Captain Lewis writing all day. We
are told by our interpreter that four Assiniboine Indians have arrived
at the camp of the Gros Ventres, and fifty lodges are coming.
Captain Clark, 5 November 1804
Last night late we were awakened by the sergeant of the guard to
see a northern light, which was light, but not red,and appeared to
darken and sometimes nearly obscured, and open. Divided about 20
degrees above horizon-various shapes-considerable space. Many times
appeared in light streaks, and at other times a great space light, and
containing floating columns, which appeared to approach each other and
retreat, leaving the lighter space at no time of the same appearance.
This morning I rose at daylight. The clouds to the north appeared
black. At eight o'clock the wind began to blow hard from the N.W., and
cold; and continued all day. Mr. Joe Gravelines, our Arikara
interpreter, Paul Primaut, La Jeunesse, and two French boys who came
with us, set out in a small pirogue, on their return to the Arikara
nation and the Illinois. Mr. Gravelines has instructions to take on the
Arikaras in the spring, Continue to build the huts out of cotton [wood]
timber, this being the only timber we have.
Captain Clark, 6 November 1804, Fort Mandan
A cloudy morning. Jussome, our Mandan interpreter, went to the
village. On his return he informed us that three Englishmen had arrived
from the Hudson's Bay Company, and would be here tomorrow. We continued
to build our huts. Many Indians come to see us, and bring their horses
to graze near us.
Captain Clark, 8 November 1804
A very hard frost this morning. We continue to build our cabins
under many disadvantages. Day cloudy. Wind from the N.W. Several
Indians pass with flying news [reports]. We got a white weasel-tail
excepted, which was black at the end-of an Indian. Captain Lewis walked
to the hill about 3/4 of a mile. We are situated in a point of the
Missouri, north side, in a cottonwood timber. This timber is tall and
heavy, containing an immense quantity of water; brittle and soft. Fine
food for horses to winter, as is said by the Indians. The Mandans graze
their horses in the day on grass, and at night, give them a stick [an
armful] of cottonwood boughs to eat. Horses, dogs, and people all pass
the night in the same lodge, or round house, covered with earth, with a
fire in the middle. Great number of wild geese passed to the south.
Flew very high.
Captain Clark, 9 November 1804
Rose early. Continued to build our fort. Numbers of Indians came to
see us. A chief, half Pawnee, came and brought a side of buffalo. In
return, we gave some few small things to himself and wife and son. He
crossed the river in the buffalo-skin canoe, and the squaw took the
boat on her back, and proceeded on to the town-3 miles. The day raw and
cold. Wind from the N.W. The geese continue to pass in gangs, as also
brants, to the south. Some ducks also pass.
Captain Clark, 10 November 1804
A cold day. Continued to work at the Fort. Two men cut themselves
with an ax. The large ducks pass to the south. An Indian gave me
several rolls of parched meat. Two squaws of the Rock Mountains,
purchased from the Indians by a Frenchman-Charbonneau-came down.
(Charbonneau had bought the captive girls to marry him, one of them
very possibly was Sacagawea) The Mandans out hunting the buffalo.
Captain Clark, 11 November 1804, Fort Mandan
A very cold night. Early this morning, The Big White, principal
chief of the lower village of the Mandans, came down. He packed about
100 pounds of fine meat on his squaw for us. We made some small
presents to the squaw and child, gave a small ax with which she was
much pleased. Three men sick with the [blank in MS.]. Several. Wind
changeable. Very cold evening. Freezing all day. Some ice on the edges
of the river.
Swans passing to the south. The hunters we sent down the river to
hunt have not returned.
The Mandans speak a language peculiar to themselves, very much
[blank in MS.]. They can raise about 350 men; the Wetersoons or Mahas,
80; and the Big Bellies, or Minnetarees, about 600 or 650 men. The
Mandans and Sioux have the same word for water. The Big Bellies or
Minnetarees and Raven [Wetersoon, as also the Crow or Raven]. Indians
speak nearly the same language, and the presumption is they were
originally the same nation. The Raven Indians have 400 lodges and about
1,200 men, and follow the buffalo, or hunt for their subsistence in the
plains, and on the C™te Noire and Rocky Mountains, and are at war with
the Sioux and Snake Indians.
The Big Bellies and Wetersoons are at war with the Snake Indians
and Sioux, and were at war with the Arikaras until we made peace a few
days past. The Mandans are at war with all who make war [on them-at
present with the Sioux] only, and wish to be at peace with all nations.
Seldom the aggressors.
Captain Clark, 13 November 1804, Fort Mandan
A cloudy morning. Ice running very thick. River rose 1/2 inch last
night. Some snow falling. Only two Indians visited us today, eluding a
ceremony of adoption, and interchange of property, between the
Assiniboines, Crees, and the nations of this neighborhood. We sent one
man by land on horseback to know the reason of the delay of our
hunters. This evening, 2 Frenchmen who were trapping below came up with
20 beaver. We are compelled to use our pork, which we do sparingly, for
fear of some failure in procuring a sufficiency from the woods.
Captain Clark, 14 November 1804, Fort Mandan
A cloudy morning. The ice runs much thicker than yesterday. At 10
o'clock, George Drouilliard and the Frenchman we dispatched yesterday
came up from the hunters who are encamped about 30 miles below. After
about one hour, we dispatched a man, with orders to the hunters to
proceed on without delay through the floating ice. We sent by the man,
tin, to put on the parts of the pirogue exposed to the ice, and a tow
rope. The wind changeable. All hands work at their huts until 1 o'clock
at night. Swans passing to the south- but few waterfowls to be seen.
Not one Indian came to our fort today.
Captain Clark, 15 November 1804
A very white frost; all the trees all covered with ice. Cloudy. All
the men move into the huts, which are not finished. Several Indians
came to camp today. The Assiniboines are at the Big Belly camp. Some
trouble likely to take place between them, from the loss of horses, as
is said by an old Indian who visited us, with four buffalo robes and
corn to trade for a pistol, which we did not let him have. Men employed
until late in daubing their huts. Some horses sent down to stay in the
woods near the fort, to prevent the Assiniboines stealing them.
Captain Clark, 16 November 1804
Captain Lewis and myself move into our hut. A very hard wind from
the W. All the after part of the day, a temperate day. Several Indians
came down to eat fresh meat. Three chiefs from the second Mandan
village stayed all day. They are very curious in examining our works.
Captain Clark, 20 November 1804
A fine day. Dispatched a pirogue, and collected stone for our
chimneys. Some wind from the S.W. Arranged our different articles. Many
Indians visited us today. George Drouilliard hurt his hand very bad.
All the party in high spirits. The river clear of ice, and rising a
little.
Captain Clark, 21 November 1804
A fine morning. Dispatched a pirogue and 5 men under the direction
of Sergeant Pryor, to the second village, for 100 bushels of corn in
ears, which Mr. Jussome let us have. [Did not get more than 30
bushels.! I was alarmed about 10 o'clock by the sentinel, who informed
that an Indian was about to kill his wife, in the interpreter's fire
about 60 yards below the works. I went down and spoke to the fellow
about the rash act he was likely to commit, and forbade any act of the
kind near the Fort.
Some misunderstanding took place between this man and his wife,
about 8 days ago, and she came to this place, and continued with the
squaws of the interpreters. [He might lawfully have killed her for
running away.] Two days ago, she returned to the village. In the
evening of the same day, she came to the interpreter's fire, apparently
much beaten and stabbed in 3 places. We directed that no man of this
party have any intercourse with this woman under the penalty of
punishment. He, the husband, observed that one of our sergeants slept
with his wife, and if he wanted her he would give her to him.
We directed the sergeant (Ordway) to give the man some articles, at
which time I told the Indian that I believed not one man of the party
had touched his wife except the one he had given the use of her for a
night, in his own bed; no man of the party should touch his squaw, or
the wife of any Indian, nor did I believe they touched a woman if they
knew her to be the wife of another man, and advised him to take his
squaw home and live happily together in future. At this time the grand
chief of the nation arrived, and lectured him, and they both went off,
apparently dissatisfied.
Captain Clark, 22 November 1804
Capt. Lewis and 2 interpreters and 6 men set out to see the Indians
in the different towns and camps in this neighborhood. We continue to
cover and daub our huts.
Captain Clark, 25 November 1804
A cloudy morning after a very cold night. The river crowded with
floating ice. Captain Lewis returned from the villages with two chiefs,
Marnohtoh and Mannessurree, and a considerable man with the party who
accompanied him. The Minnetarees, or Big Bellies, were alarmed at the
tales told them by the Mandans, viz., that we intended to join the
Sioux to cut them off in the course of the winter. Many circumstances
combined to give force to those reports, i.e., the movements of the
interpreters and their families to the Fort, the strength of our work,
All those reports were contradicted by Captain Lewis with a conviction
on the minds of the Indians of the falsity of those reports.
The Indians in all the towns and camps treated Captain Lewis and
the party with great respect, except one of the principal chiefs,
Marparpaparrapasatoo, or Horned Weasel, who did not choose to be seen
by the Captain, and left word that he was not at home, Seven traders
arrived from the fort on the Assiniboine from the N.W. Company, one of
which, LaFrance, took upon himself to speak unfavorably of our
intentions, The principal, Mr. Larocque, and Mr. McKenzie 10 were
informed of the conduct of their interpreter and the consequences, if
they did not put a step to unfavorable and ill-founded assertions,
Captain Clark, 27 November 1804
A cold morning. Wind from the N.W. River full of floating ice.
Began to snow at 7 o'clock, A.M., and continued all day. At eight
o'clock, the Posscossohe, Black Cat, grand chief of the Mandans, came
to see us. After showing these chiefs many things which were
curiosities to them, and giving a few presents of curious
handkerchiefs, arm bands, and paint, with a twist of tobacco, they
departed at 1 o'clock much pleased. At parting we had some little talk
on the subject of the British trader, Mr. Larocque giving medals and
flags, and told those chiefs to impress it on the minds of their
nations that those symbols were not to be received by any from them,
without they wished to incur the pleasure of their Great American
Father. A very disagreeable day. No work done today. River fell 1 inch
today.
A very cold windy day. Wind from the N.W. by W. Some snow last
night. The depth of the snow is various in the woods, about 13 inches.
The river closed at the village above, and fell last night two feet.
Mr. Larocqueand one of his men came to visit us. We informed him what
we had heard of his intentions of making chiefs, and forbade him to
give medals or flags to the Indians. He denied having any such
intention. We agreed that one of our interpreters should speak for him
on condition he did not say anything more than what tended to trade
alone. He gave fair promises,
Sergeant Pryor, in taking down the mast, put his shoulder out of
place. We made four trials before we replaced it. A cold afternoon.
Wind as usual N.W. River began to rise a little.
Captain Clark, 29 November04
This morning at 8 o'clock, an Indian called from the other side,
and informed that he had something of consequence to communicate. We
sent a pirogue for him, and he informed us as follows: "Five men of the
Mandan nation, out hunting in a S.W. direction about eight leagues,
were surprised by a large party of Sioux and Pawnees. One man was
killed and two wounded with arrows, and 9 horses taken; 4 of the
Wetersoon nation were missing, and they expected to be attacked by the
Sioux, We thought it well to show a disposition to aid and assist them
against their enemies, particularly those who came in opposition to our
councils. And I determined to go to the town with some men and, if the
Sioux were coming to attack the nation, to collect the warriors from
each village and meet them. Those ideas were also those of Captain
Lewis.
I crossed the river in about an hour after the arrival of the
Indian express with 23 men including the interpreters, and flanked the
town and came up on the back part. The Indians, not expecting to
receive such strong aid in so short a time, were much surprised, and a
little alarmed at the formidable appearance of my party. The principal
chiefs met me some distance from the town (say 200 yards) and invited
me in to town. I ordered my party into different lodges, I explained to
the nation the cause of my coming in this formidable manner to their
town was to assist and chastise the enemies of our dutiful children. I
requested the grand chief to repeat the circumstances as they happened,
which he did, as was mentioned by the express in the morning. I then
informed them that if they would assemble their warriors and those of
the different towns, I would go to meet the army of Sioux, and chastise
them for taking the blood of our dutiful children, After a conversation
of a few minutes among themselves, one chief-The Big Man, a
Cheyenne-said they now saw that what we had told them was the truth:
that when we expected the enemies of their nation were coming to attack
them, or had spilled their blood, we were ready to protect them, and
kill those who would not listen to our good talk. His people had
listened to what we had told them, and fearlessly went out to hunt in
small parties believing themselves to be safe from the other nations,
and were killed by the Pawnees and Sioux.
"I knew," said he, "that the Pawnees were liars, and told the old
chief who came with you (to confirm a peace with us) that his people
were liars and bad men, and that we killed them like the buffalo-when
we pleased. We had made peace several times and your nation has always
commenced the war. We do not want to kill you, and will not suffer you
to kill us or steal our horses. We will make peace with you as our two
fathers have directed, and they shall see that we will not be the
aggressors. But we fear the Arikaras will not be at peace long. My
father, those are the words I spoke to the Arikaras in your presence.
You see they have not opened their ears to your good counsels, but have
spilled our blood. "Two Arikaras, whom we sent home this day, for fear
of our people's killing them in their grief, informed us when they came
here several days ago, that two towns of the Arikaras were making their
moccasins, and that we had best take care of our horses, Numbers of
Sioux were in their towns and, they believed, not well disposed toward
us. Four of the Wetersoons are now absent. They were to have been back
in 16 days, they have been out 24. We fear they have fallen. My father,
the snow is deep and it is cold. Our horses cannot travel through the
plains. Those people who have spilt our blood have gone back. If you
will go with us in the spring after the snow goes off, we will raise
the warriors of all the towns and nations around about us, and go with
you."
I told this nation that we should be always willing and ready to
defend them from the insults of any nation who would dare to come to do
them injury, during the time we remained in their neighborhood, and
requested that they would inform us of any party who might at any time
be discovered by their patrols or scouts. I was sorry that the snow in
the plains had fallen so deep since the murder of the young chief by
the Sioux as prevented their horses from traveling. I wished to meet
those Sioux and all others who will not open their ears, but make war
on our dutiful children, and let you see that the warriors of your
Great Father will chastise the enemies of his dutiful children the
Mandans, Wetersoons, and Minnetarees, who have opened their ears to his
advice. You say that the Pawnees or Arikaras were with the Sioux. Some
bad men may have been with the Sioux. You know there are bad men in all
nations. Do not get mad with the Arikaras until we know if those bad
men are countenanced by their nation, and we are convinced those people
do not intend to follow our counsels. You know that the Sioux have
great influence over the Arikaras, and perhaps have led some of them
astray. You know that the Arikaras are dependent on the Sioux for their
guns, powder, and ball; and it was policy in them to keep on as good
terms as possible with the Sioux until they had some other means of
getting those articles, You know yourselves that you are compelled to
put up with little insults from the Crees and Assiniboines (or Stone
Indians) because if you go to war with those people, they will prevent
the traders in the north from bringing you guns, powder, and ball, and
by that means distress you very much. But when you will have certain
supplies from your Great American Father of all those articles, you
will not suffer any nation to insult you,
After about two hours' conversation on various subjects, all of
which tended toward their situation, I informed them I should return to
the Fort. The chief said they all thanked me very much for the fatherly
protection which I showed toward them; that the village had been crying
all the night and day for the death of the brave young man who fell,
but now they would wipe away their tears and rejoice in their father's
protection, and cry no more.
I then paraded and crossed the river on the ice, and came down on
the north side. The snow so deep, it was very fatiguing. Arrived at the
Fort after night, gave a little taffee [dram] to my party. A cold
night. The river rose its former height. The chief frequently thanked
me for coming to protect them; and the whole village appeared thankful
for that measure.
Captain Clark, 30mber 1804
Wind from the N.W. All hands engaged in getting pickets, At 10
o'clock, the half-brother of the man who was killed came and informed
us that, after my departure last night, six Chiens [Cheyennes]-so
called by the French- or Sharha Indians, had arrived with a pipe, and
said that their nation was at one day's march and intended to come and
trade, Three Pawnees had also arrived from the nation. Their nation was
then within 3 days' march, and were coming on to trade with us. Three
Pawnees accompanied these Cheyennes. The Mandans call all Arikaras
Pawnees; they don't use the name of Arikaras, but the Arikaras call
themselves Arikaras. The Mandans apprehended danger from the Sharhas,
as they were at peace with the Sioux, and wished to kill them and the
Arikaras (or Pawnees), but the chiefs informed the nation it was our
wish that they should not be hurt and forbid their being killed, We
gave a little tobacco, and this man departed, well satisfied with our
counsels and advice to him.
In the evening a Mr. G. Henderson arrived, in the employ of the
Hudson's Bay Company, sent to trade with the Gros Ventres, or Big
Belles, so called by the French traders.
A very cold day. Wind from the N.W. The Big White, grand chief of
the first village, came and informed us that a large drove of buffalo
was near, and his people were waiting for us to join them in a chase.
Captain Lewis took 15 men and went out and joined the Indians who were,
at the time he got up, killing the buffalo, on horseback with arrows,
which they did with great dexterity. His party killed 10 buffalo, five
of which we got to the fort by the assistance of a horse, in addition
to what the men packed on their backs. One cow was killed on the ice.
After drawing her out of a vacancy in the ice in which she had fallen,
we butchered her at the fort. Those we did not get in were taken by the
Indians under a custom which is established among them, i.e., any
person seeing a buffalo lying, without an arrow sticking in him or some
particular mark, takes possession. Many times, as I am told, a hunter
who kills many buffalo in a chase only gets a part of one. All meat
which is left out all night falls to the wolves, which are in great
numbers, always in the neighborhood of the buffaloes. The river closed,
opposite the Fort, last night - 1 1/2 inches thick. The thermometer
stood this morning at 1 degree below zero. Three men were frostbitten
badly today.
Captain
Captain Clark, 704
A very cold day. The thermometer today at 10 and 11 degrees below
zero. Captain Lewis returned today at 12 o'clock, leaving 6 men at the
camp to prepare the meat for to pack. Four horse loads came in. Captain
Lewis had a cold. Disagreeable last night in the snow, on a cold point
with one small blanket. The buffalo crossed the river below in immense
herds without breaking in. Only 2 buffalo killed today, one of which
was too poor to skin. The men who were frostbitten are getting better.
The river rose 11/2 inch. Wind north.
Captain Clark, 10th December, 1804. Fort Mandan
A clear cold morning. The thermometer at sunrise stood at 22
degrees below zero. A very singular appearance of the moon last night,
as she appeared through the frosty atmosphere. Mr. Heney from the
establishment on the river Assiniboine, with a letter from Mr. Charles
Chaboillez, one of the Company, arrived in six days. Mr. C., in his
letter, expressed a great anxiety to serve us in anything in his power.
A root described by Mr. Heney for the cure of a mad dog. Mr. Larocque,
a clerk of the N.W. Company, and Mr. George Bunch, a clerk of the
Hudson's Bay Company, accompanied Mr. Heney from the village.
Captain Clark, 16 December 180/P>
A very cold morning. The thermometer stood at 45 degrees below
zero. We found Mr. Heney a very intelligent man, from whom we obtained
some sketches of the country between the Mississippi and Missouri, and
some sketches from him which he had obtained from the Indians to the
west of this place, also the names and characters of the Sioux, About 8
o'clock P.M., the thermometer fell to 74 degrees below the freezing
point. The Indian chiefs sent word that buffalo were in our
neighborhood, and if we would join them in the morning, they would go
and kill them.
Captain Clark
Captain Clark, 17
The thermometer the same as last night. Messrs. Heney and Larocque
left us for the Gros Ventres' camp. Sent out seven men to hunt for the
buffalo. They found the weather too cold, and returned. Several Indians
same who had set out with a view to kill buffalo. The river rose a
little. I employ myself making a small map of connection, Sent Jussome
to the main chief of the Mandans to know the cause of his detaining or
taking a horse of Charbonneau's, our Big Belly interpreter, which, we
found, was through the rascality of one LaFrance, a trader from the
N.W. Company, who told this chief that CharbonneauI> owed him a
horse-to go and take him. He did so, agreeable to an Indian custom. He
gave up the horse.
Captain Clark, December1804
A fine day, warm, and wind from the N.W. by W. The Indian whom I
stopped from committing murder on his wife, through jealousy of one of
our interpreters, came and brought his two wives, and showed great
anxiety to make up with the man with whom his jealousy sprang. A woman
brought a child with an abscess on the lower part of the back, and
offered as much corn as she could carry for some medicine. Captain
Lewis administered,
Captain Clark, 21 cember 184
I was awakened before day by a discharge of three platoons from the
party, and the French. The men merrily disposed. I gave them all a
little taffia and permitted three cannon fired at the raising of our
flag. Some men went out to hunt, and the others to dancing and
continued until 9 o'clock P.M., when the the frolic ended,
(nnecting the country," Clark means posting new information on his
map. His originals are now in the Yale University Library.)
The day was ushered in by the discharge of two cannon. We suffered
16 men with their music to visit the first village for the purpose of
dancing, by-as they said-the particular request of the chiefs of that
village. About 11 o'clock, I with an interpreter and two men, walked up
to the village. My views were to allay some little misunderstanding
which had taken place through jealousy and mortification as to our
treatment toward them. I found them much pleased at the dancing of our
men. I ordered my black servant to dance, which amused the crowd very
much, and somewhat astonished them that so large a man should be
active, I went into the lodges of all the men of note, except two, who
I heard had made some expressions not favorable toward us, in comparing
us with the traders of the north. Those chiefs observed to us that what
they said was in jest and laughter.
Captain Clark, Fort Mandan on the N.E. bank of the Missouri, 1,600
miles up00 miles up. 1
A cold day. Some snow. Several Indians visit us with their axes, to
get them mended. I employ myself drawing a connection of the country
from what information I have received. A buffalo dance (or medicine)
for three nights past, in the first village. A curious custom: The old
men arrange themselves in a circle, and after smoking a pipe which is
handed them by a young man dressed up for the purpose, the young men
who have their wives back of the circle go each to one of the old men
and, with a whining tone, request the old man to take his wife, who
presents herself naked, except a robe, and sleep with her. The girl
then takes the old man (who very often can scarcely walk) and leads him
to a convenient place for the business, after which they return to the
lodge. If the old man (or a white man) returns to the lodge without
gratifying the man and his wife, he offers her again and again. It is
often the case that, after the second time without kissing, the husband
throws a new robe over the old man, and begs him not to despise him and
his wife. We sent a man to this medicine dance last night, and they
gave him four girls. All this is to cause the buffalo to come near, so
that they may kill them.
Captain Cla
Captain Clark, 5>
A cold, clear day. Great numbers of Indians move down the river to
hunt. Those people kill a number of buffalo near their villages and
save a great proporhon of the meat. Their custom of making this article
of life general leaves them more than half of their time without meat.
Their corn and beans, they keep for the summer, and as a reserve in
case of an attack from the Sioux, of which they are always in dread,
and seldom go far to hunt except in large parties. About l/2 the Mandan
nation passed today, to hunt on the river below. They will stay out
some days. Mr. Charbonneau, our interpreter, and one man who
accompanied him to some lodges of the Minnetarees near the Turtle Hill,
returned, both frozen in their faces. Charbonneau informs me that the
clerk of the Hudson's Bay Company, with the Minnetarees, has been
speaking some few expressions unfavorable toward us, and that it is
said the N.W. Company intends building a fort at the Minnetarees. He
saw the Grand Chief of the Big Bellies, who spoke slightingly of the
Americans, saying if we would give our great flag to him he would come
to see us.
Captain Clark,
Captain Clark, 13
This morning early a number of Indians, men, women, children, dogs,
passed down on the ice to join those that passed yesterday. We sent
Sergeant Pryor and five men with those Indians to hunt. Several men
with the venereal, caught from the Mandan women. One of our hunters,
sent out several days ago, arrived and informs that one
man-Whitehouse-is frostbitten and can't walk home.
Captain Clark, 14
Captain Clark, 14 January>
About thirty Mandans came to the fort today; 6 chiefs. Those
Minnetarees told them they were liars; had told them if they came to
the fort the white men would kill them. They had been with them all
night, smoked the pipe and have been treated well, and the whites had
danced for them, observing the Mandans were bad, and ought to hide
themselves. One of the first war chiefs of the Big Bellies' nation came
to see us today, with one man and his squaw to wait on him. Requested
that she might be used for the night. His wife handsome. We shot the
air gun and gave two shots with the cannon, which pleased them very
much. The Little Crow, second chief of the lower village, came and
brought us corn, Four men of ours, who had been hunting, returned; one
frosted.
This war chief gave us a chart, in his way, of the Missouri. He
informed us of his intentions of going to war in the spring against the
Snake Indians. We advised him to look back at the number of nations who
had been destroyed by war, and reflect upon what he was about to do;
observing, if he wished, the happiness of his nation, he would be at
peace with all. By that, by being at peace, and having plenty of goods
amongst them, and a free intercourse with those defenseless nations,
they would get, on easy terms, a greater number of horses; and that
nation would increase. If he went to war against those defenseless
people, he would displease his Great Father, and he would not receive
that protection and care from him, as other nations who listened to his
word. This chief, who is a young man 26 years old, replied that if his
going to war against the Snake Indians would be displeasing to us, he
would not go.
Captain Clark
Captain Clark, 16 January;
This morning was fair. Thermometer at 18 degrees above zero. Much
warmer than it has been for some days. Wind S.E. Continue to be visited
by the natives. The sergeant of the guard reported that the Indian
women (wives to our interpreters) were in the habit of unbarring the
fort gate at any time of night and admitting their Indian visitors. I
therefore directed a lock to be put to the gate, and ordered that no
Indian but those attached to the garrison should be permitted to remain
all night within the fort, or admitted during the period which the gate
had been previously ordered to be kept shut, which was from sunset
until sunrise.
Captain Lewis, 7
Captain Lewis, 7P>
This morning fair and pleasant. Wind from the S.E. Visited by Mr.
McKenzie, one of the N.W. Company's clerks. This evening a man by the
name of Howard, whom I had given permission to go to the Mandan
village, returned after the gate was shut, and rather than call to the
guard to have it opened, scaled the works. An Indian who was looking
on, shortly after followed his example. I convinced the Indian of the
impropriety of his conduct, and explained to him the risk he had run of
being severely treated. The fellow appeared much alarmed. I gave him a
small piece of tobacco, and sent him away. Howard I had committed to
the care of the guard, with a determination to have him tried by a
courtmartial for this offense. This man is an old soldier, which still
heightens this offense.
Captain Lewis, 9 Fe
Captain Lewis, 9nbsp;
The party that were ordered last evening set out early this
morning. The weather was fair and cold. Wind N.W. About five o'clock
this evening, one of the wives of Charbonneau was delivered of a fine
boy. It is worthy of remark that this was the first child which this
woman had born, and as is common in such cases her labor was tedious
and the pain violent. Mr. Jussome informed me that he had frequently
administered a small portion of the rattle of the rattlesnake, which he
assured me had never failed to produce the desired effect-that of
hastening the birth of the child. Having the rattle of a snake by me, I
gave it to him, and he administered two rings of it to the woman,
broken in small pieces with the fingers, and added to a small quantity
of water. Whether this medicine was truly the cause or not, I shall not
undertake to determine. But I was informed that she had not taken it
more than ten minutes, before she brought forth. Perhaps this remedy
may be worthy of future experiments, but I must confess that I want
faith as to its efficacy.
Captain Lewis, 11 February 1805
This morning was fair though cold. Thermometer 14 degrees below
zero. Wind S.E. Ordered the blacksmith to shoe the horses, and some
others to prepare some gears in order to send them down with three
sleighs to join the hunting party, and transport the meat which they
may have procured, to this place. The men whom I had sent for the meat
left by Charbonneau did not return until 4 o'clock this evening.
Drouilliard arrived with the horses about the same time. The horses
appeared much fatigued. I directed some bran be given them, moistened
with a little water, but to my astonishment found that they would not
eat it, but preferred the bark of the cottonwood, which forms the
principal article of food usually given them by their Indian masters in
the winter season. For this purpose, they cause the tree to be felled
by their women, and the horses feed on the boughs and bark of their
tender branches. The Indians in our neighborhood are frequently
pilfered of their horses by the Arikaras, Sioux, and Assiniboines, and
therefore make it an invariable rule to put their horses in their
lodges at night. In this situation, the only food of the horses
consists of a few sticks of the cottonwood, from the size of a man's
finger to that of his arm.
Captain Lewis, 12 Februar
Captain Lewis, 12/P> /FONT>
A delightful day. Put out our clothes to sun. Visited by The Big
White and Big Man. They informed me that several men of their nation
were gone to consult their medicine stone, about 3 days' march to the
southwest, to know what was to be the result of the ensuing year. They
have great confidence in this stone, and say that it informs them of
everything which is to happen, and visit it every spring and sometimes
in the summer. "They, having arrived at the stone, give it smoke, and
proceed to the woods at some distance to sleep. The next morning,
return to the stone, and find marks white and raised on the stone,
representing the peace or war which they are to meet with, and other
changes which they are to meet." This stone has a level surface about
20 feet in circumference, thick and porous, and no doubt has some
mineral qualities affected by the sun. The Big Bellies have a stone to
which they ascribe nearly the same virtues.
Captain Lewis returned with 2 sleighs loaded with meat. After
finding that he could not overtake the Sioux war party, (who had in
their way destroyed all the meat at one deposit which I had made, and
burned the lodges), determined to proceed on to the lower deposit which
he found had not been observed by the Sioux. He hunted two days; killed
36 deer and 14 elk, several of them so meager that they were unfit for
use. The meat which he killed and that in the lower deposit, amounting
to about 3,000 pounds, was brought up on two sleighs; one, drawn by 16
men, had about 2,400 pounds on it.
Captain Clark, 21 February 1805
Wefixed a windlass and drew up the two pirogues on the upper bank,
and attempted the boat; but the rope, which we had made of elk skins,
proved too weak, and broke several times. Night coming on obliged us to
leave her in a situation but little advanced. We were visited by the
Black Moccasin, chief of the little village of the Big Bellies, the
chief of the Shoe Indians, and a number of others. Those chiefs gave us
some meat which they packed on their wives; and one requested an ax to
be made for his son, Mr. Root Bunch, one of the under traders for the
Hudson's Bay Company. One of the Big Bellies asked leave for himself
and his two wives to stay all night, which was granted. Also two boys
stayed all night, one the son of The Black Cat.
This day has been exceedingly pleasant.
Captain Clark, 25 February 1805
Captain Clark, 25
A fin morning. Two men of the N.W. Company arrived with letters,
and sackacomah [sacacommis], also a root and I top of a plant,
presented by Mr. Heney, for the cure of mad dogs, snakes, and to be
found and used as follows, viz., "this root is found on the high lands
and ascent of hills. The way of using it is to scarify the part when
bitten, to chew or pound an inch, or more if the root is small, and
apply it to the bitten part, renewing it twice a day. The bitten person
is not to chew or swallow any of the root, for it might have contrary
effect."
Sent out 16 men to make four pirogues. Those men returned in the
evening, and informed that they found trees they thought would answer.
Mr. Gravelines, two Frenchmen, and two Indians arrived from the
Arikara nation, with letters from Mr. Anthony Tabeau, informing us of
the peaceable dispositions of that nation toward the Mandans and
Minnetarees, and their avowed intentions of pursuing our counsels and
advice. They express a wish to visit the Mandans, and to know if it
will be agreeable to them to admit the Arikaras to settle near them,
and join them against their common enemy, the Sioux. We mentioned this
to the Mandans, who observed they had always wished to be at peace and
good neighbors with the Arikaras, and it is also the sentiment of all
the Big Bellies and Shoe nations.
Mr. Gravelines informs that the Sissetons and the 3 upper bands of
the Tetons, with the Yanktons of the north, intend to come to war in a
short time against the nations in this quarter, and will kill every
white man they see. Mr. Tabeau also informs that Mr. Cameron of St.
Peters has put arms into the hands of the Sioux, to revenge the death
of 3 of his men killed by the Chippewas, latterly; and that the band of
Tetons which we saw is disposed to do as we have advised them through
the influence of their chief, Black Buffalo.
Mr. Gravelines further informs that the party which robbed us of
the two horses latterly, were all Sioux-106 in number. They called at
the Arikaras on their return. The Arikaras, being displeased at their
conduct, would not give then anything to eat, that being the greatest
insult they could possibly offer them, and upbraided them.
Captain Clark, 28 February 1805
>A cloudy cold, and windy morning. Wind from the north. I walked up
to see the party that is making pirogues, about 5 miles above this. The
wind hard and cold. On my way up, I met Le Borgne, main chief of the
Minnetarees, with four Indians on their way to see us. I requested him
to proceed on to the Fort, where he would find Captain Lewis. I should
be there myself in the course of a few hours. Sent the interpreter back
with him, and proceeded on myself to the canoes. Found them nearly
finished. The timber very bad. After visiting all the pirogues, where I
found a number of Indians, I went to the upper Mandan village and
smoked a pipe (the greatest mark of friendship and attention) with the
chief, and returned. On my return, found the Minnetaree chief about to
set out on his return to his village, having received of Captain M.
Lewis, a medal, gorges, arm bands, a flag shirt, scarlet, for which he
was much pleased. Those things were given in place of sundry articles
sent to him which, he says, he did not receive. Two guns were fired for
this great man.
We have every reason to believe that our Minnetaree interpreter
(whom we intended to take, with his wife, as an interpreter through his
wife, to the Snake Indians, of which nation she is) has been corrupted
by the [blank in MS.] Company. Some explanation has taken place which
clearly proves to us the fact. We give him tonight to reflect, and
determine whether or not he intends to go with us, under the
regulations stated.
Captain Clark, 11 March
Captain Clark, 11P> P>A fine day. Some snow last night. Our
interpreter, Charbonneau, determines on not proceeding with us as an
interpreter under the terms mentioned yesterday. He will not agree to
work, let our situation be what it may, nor stand guard, and, if miffed
with any man, he wishes to return when he pleases, also [to] have the
disposal of as much provisions as he chooses to carry. Inadmissible.
And we suffer him to be off the engagement, which was only verbal.
Captain Clark, 12 March 1805
1805
A windy day. Attempted to air our goods, Mr. Charbonneau sent a
Frenchman of our party [to say] that he was sorry for the foolish part
he had acted, and if we pleased he would accompany us agreeable to the
terms we had proposed, and do everything we wished him to do, He had
requested me some [sic], through our French interpreter two days ago,
to excuse his simplicity, and take him into the service. After he had
taken his things across the river, we called him in and spoke to him on
the subject. He agreed to our terms, and we agreed that he might go on
with us.
The ice has stopped running, owing to some obstacle above. Repaired
the boat and pirogues, and preparing to set out. But few Indians
visited us today. They are now attending on the river bank to catch the
floating buffalo.
Captain Clark
Captain Clark, 29
Sergeant Ordway> now here. Cloudy day. Several gangs of geese and
ducks pass up the river. But a small portion of ice floating down
today. But few Indians visited us today. All the party in high spirits.
They pass but few nights without amusing themselves dancing, possessing
perfect harmony and good understanding toward each other. Generally
healthy except venereal complaints, which are very common among the
natives, and the men catch it from them.
Captain Clark, 31
Having on this day at 4 P.M. completed every arrangement necessary
for our departure, we dismissed the barge and crew, with orders to
return without loss of time to St. Louis. A small canoe with two French
hunters accompanied the barge. These men had ascended the Missouri with
us the last year as engagŽs. The barge crew consisted of six soldiers
and two [blank space in MS.] Frenchmen. Two Frenchmen and an Arikara
Indian also take their passage in her as far as the Arikara villages,
at which place we expect Mr. Tabeau to embark, with his peltry, who, in
that case, will make an addition of two, perhaps four, men to the crew
of the barge.
We gave Richard Warfington, a discharged corporal, the charge of
the barge and crew, and confided to this care likewise our dispatches
to the government, letters to our private friends, and a number of
articles to the President of the United States. One of the Frenchmen,
by the name of Joseph Gravelines, an honest, discreet man, and an
excellent boatman, is employed to conduct the barge as a pilot. We have
therefore every hope that the barge and, with her, our dispatches will
arrive safe at St. Louis. Mr. Gravelines, who speaks the Arikara
language extremely well, has been employed to conduct a few of the
Arikara chiefs to the seat of government, who have promised us to
descend in the barge to St. Louis with that view.
At the same moment that the barge departed from Fort Mandan,
Captain Clark embarked with our party and proceeded up the river.
As I had used no exercise for several weeks, I determined to walk on
shore as far as our encampment of this evening. Accordingly I continued
my walk on the north side of the river about six miles, to the upper
village of the Mandans, and called on The Black Cat, or Posecopseha,
the Great Chief of the Mandans. He was not at home. I rested myself a
few minutes and, finding that the party had not arrived, I returned
about two miles and joined them at their encampment on the N. side of
the river opposite the lower Mandan village.
Our party now consisted of the following individuals:
Sergeants:
John Ordway
Nathaniel Pryor
Patrick Gass
Privates:
William Bratton
John Colter
Reuben Fields
Joseph Fields
John Shields
George Gibson
George Shannon
John Potts
John Collins
Joseph Whitehouse
Richard Windsor
Alexander Willard
Hugh Hall
Silas Goodrich
Robert Frazer
Peter Cruzat
John Baptiste Lepage
Francis Labiche
Hugh McNeil
William Warner
Thomas P. Howard
Peter Wiser
John B. Thompson
556B2F">
Interpreters: George Drouilliard and Toussaint Charbonneau; also a
black man by the name of York, servant to Captain Clark; an Indian
woman, wife to Charbonneau, with a young child; and a Mandan man who
had promised us to accompany us as far as the Snake Indians, with a
view to bring about a good understanding and friendly intercourse
between that nation and his own, the Minnetarees and Amahamis.
Our vessels consisted of six small canoes and two large progues.
This little fleet, although not quite so respectable as that of
Columbus or Captain Cook, was still viewed by us with as much pleasure
as those deservedly famed adventurers ever beheld theirs, and, I
daresay, with quite as much anxiety for their safety and preservation.
We were now about to penetrate a country at least two thousand miles in
width, on which the foot of civilized man had never trod. The good or
evil it had in store for us was for experiment yet to determine, and
these little vessels contained every article by which we were to expect
to subsist or defend ourselves. However, as the state of mind in which
we are, generally gives the coloring to events, when the imagination is
suffered to wander into futurity, the picture which now presented
itself to me was a most pleasing one.
Entertaining as I do the most confident hope of succeeding in a
voyage which had formed a darling project of mine for the last ten
years, I could but esteem this moment of my departure as among the most
happy of my life. The party are in excellent health and spirits,
zealously attached to the enterprise, and anxious to proceed. Not a
whisper or murmur of discontent to be heard among them, but all act in
unison and with the most perfect harmony.
Captain Lewis, Port Mandan, 7 April 1805
bsp;
Being disappointed in my observations of yesterday for longitude, I
was unwilling to remain at the entrance of the river another day for
that purpose, and therefore determined to set out early this morning,
which we did accordingly. The wind was in our favor after 9 A.M., and
continued favorable until 3 P.M. We therefore hoisted both the sails in
the white pirogue, consisting of a small square sail and spritsail,
which carried her at a pretty good gait until about 2 in the afternoon,
when a sudden squall of wind struck us and turned the pirogue so much
on the side as to alarm Charbonneau, who was steering at the time.
In this state of alarm, he threw the pirogue with her side to the
wind, when the spritsail, jibing, was as near oversetting the pirogue
as it was possible to have missed. The wind, however, abating for an
instant, I ordered Drouilliard to the helm and the sails to be taken
in, which was instantly executed, and the pirogue, being steered before
the wind, was again placed in a state of security.
This accident was very near costing us dearly. Believing this
vessel to be the most steady and safe, we had embarked on board of it
our instruments, papers, medicine, and the most valuable part of the
merchandise which we had still in reserve as presents for the Indians.
We had also embarked on board ourselves, with three men who could not
swim and the squaw with the young child, all of whom, had the pirogue
overset, would most probably have perished, as the waves were high, and
the pirogue upwards of 200 yards from the nearest shore. However, we
fortunately escaped, and pursued our journey under the square sail,
which, shortly after the accident, I directed to be again hoisted.
Our party caught 3 beaver last evening, and the French hunters, 7.
As there was much appearance of beaver just above the entrance of the
Little Missouri, these hunters concluded to remain some days. We
therefore left them without the expectation of seeing them again. Just
above the entrance of the Little Missouri, the Great Missouri is
upwards of a mile in width, though immediately at the entrance of the
former it is not more than 200 yards wide and so shallow that the
canoes passed it with setting poles.
At the distance of 9 miles, passed the mouth of a creek on the
starboard side which we called Onion Creek from the quantity of wild
onions which grow in the plains on its borders. Captain Clark, who was
on shore, informed me that this creek was 16 yards wide a mile and a
half above its entrance, discharges more water than creeks of its size
usually do in this open country, and that there was not a stick of
timber of any description to be seen on its borders, or the level plain
country through which it passes.
Saw some buffalo and elk at a distance today, but killed none of
them. We found a number of carcasses of the buffalo lying along shore,
which had been drowned by falling through the ice in winter, and lodged
on shore by the high water when the river broke up about the first of
this month. We saw also many tracks of the white bear of enormous size,
along the river shore and about the carcasses of the buffalo, on which
I presume they feed.
We have not as yet seen one of these animals, though their tracks
are so abundant and recent. The men, as well as ourselves, are anxious
to meet with some of these bear. The Indians give a very formidable
account of the strength and ferocity of this animal, which they never
dare to attack
but in parties of six, eight, or ten persons; and are even then
frequently defeated with the loss of one or more of their party.
The savages attack this animal with their bows and arrows and the
indifferent guns with which the traders furnish them. With these they
shoot with such uncertainty and at so short a distance that, unless
shot through head or heart wound not mortal, they frequently miss their
aim and fall a sacrifice to the bear. Two Minnetarees were killed
during the last winter in an attack on a white bear This animal is said
more frequently to attack a man on meeting with him, than to flee from
him. When the Indians are about to go in quest of the white bear,
previous to their departure they paint themselves and perform all those
superstitious rites commonly observed when they are about to make war
upon a neighboring nation.
Captain Lewis, 13 Ap
Captain Lewis, 13;
1805
One of the hunters saw an otter last evening and shot at it, but
missed it. A dog came to us this morning, which we supposed to have
been lost by the Indians who were recently encamped near the lake that
we passed yesterday. The mineral appearances of salts, coal, and
sulphur, together with burned hills and pumice stone, still continue.
While we remained at the entrance of the Little Missouri, we saw
several pieces of pumice stone floating down that stream, a
considerable quantity of which had lodged against a point of driftwood
a little above its entrance.
Captain Clark walked on shore this morning, and on his return
informed me that he had passed through the timbered bottoms on the N.
side of the river, and had extended his walk several miles back on the
hills. In the bottom lands he had met with several uninhabited Indian
lodges built with the boughs of the elm, and in the plains he met with
the remains of two large encampments of a recent date, which from the
appearance of some hoops of small kegs seen near them, we concluded
that they must have been the camps of the Assiniboines, as no other
nation who visit this part of the Missouri ever indulge themselves with
spirituous liquor. Of this article the Assiniboines are passionately
fond, and we are informed that it forms their principal inducement to
furnish the British establishments on the Assiniboine River with the
dried and pounded meat and grease which they do.
The mineral appearances still continue. Considerable quantities of
bituminous water, about the color of strong lye, trickle down the sides
of the hills. This water partakes of the taste of Glauber salts and
slightly of alum. While the party halted to take dinner today, Captain
Clark killed a buffalo bull. It was meager, and we therefore took the
marrowbones and a small proportion of the meat only.
Near the place we dined, on the larboard side, there was a large
village of burrowing squirrels. I have remarked that these animals
generally select a southeasterly exposure for their residence, though
they are sometimes found in the level plains. Passed an island above
which two small creeks fall in on the larboard side; the upper creek
largest, which we called Charbonneau's Creek, after our interpreter,
who encamped several weeks on it with a hunting party of Indians. This
was the highest point to which any white man had ever ascended, except
two Frenchmen-one of whom, Lepage, was now with us-who, having lost
their way, had straggled a few miles farther, though to what place
precisely I could not learn. I walked on shore above this creek and
killed an elk, which was so poor that it was unfit for use. I therefore
left it, and joined the party at their encampment on the starboard
shore a little after dark. On my arrival, Captain Clark informed me
that he had seen two white bear pass over the hills shortly after I
fired, and that they appeared to run nearly from the place where I
shot.
Captain Lewis, 14
Captain Lewis, 14 April
Set out at an early hour this morning. I walked on shore, and
Captain Clark. continued with the party, it being an invariable rule
with us not to be both absent from our vessels at the same time. I
passed through the bottoms of the river on the starboard side. They
were partially covered with timber, were extensive, level, and
beautiful. In my walk, which was about 6 miles, I passed a small
rivulet of clear water making down from the hills, which, on tasting, I
discovered to be in a small degree brackish. It possessed less of the
Glauber salts, or alum, than those little streams from the hills
usually do.
In a little pond of water, formed by this rivulet where it entered
the bottom, I heard the frogs crying for the first time this season.
Their note was the same as that of the small frogs which are common to
the lagoons and swamps of the United States. I saw greater quantities
of geese feeding in the bottoms, of which I shot one. Saw some deer and
elk, but they were remarkably shy. I also met with great numbers of
grouse or prairie hens, as they are called by the English traders of
the N.W. These birds appeared to be mating; the note of the male is
kuck, kuck, kuck, coo, coo, coo. The first part of the note both male
and female use when flying. The male also drums with his wings,
something like the pheasant, but by no means as loud. After breakfast,
Captain Clark walked on the starboard shore.
Captain Lewis, 15 April 1805
Set out at an early hour this morning. Proceeded pretty well until
breakfast, when the wind became so hard ahead that we proceeded with
difficulty even with the assistance of our towlines. The party halted,
and Captain Clark and myself walked to the White Earth River, which
approaches the Missouri very near this place, being about 4 miles above
its entrance. We found that it contained more water than streams of its
size generally do at this season. The water is much clearer than that
of the Missouri. The banks of the river are steep and not more than ten
or twelve feet high. The bed seems to be composed of mud together.
The salts which have been before mentioned as common on the
Missouri appear in great quantities along the banks of this river,
which are in many places so thickly covered with it that they appear
perfectly white. Perhaps it has been from this white appearance of its
banks that the river has derived its name. This river is said to be
navigable nearly to its source, which is at no great distance from the
Saskatchewan and I think from its size, the direction which it seems to
take, and the latitude of its mouth, that there is very good ground to
believe that it extends as far north as latitude 500. This stream
passes through an open country generally.
The broken hills of the Missouri, about this place, exhibit large
irregular and broken masses of rock and stone; some of which, though
200 feet above the level of the water, seem at some former period to
have felt its influence, for they appear smooth as if worn by the
agitation of the water. This collection consists of white and gray
granite, a brittle black rock, flint, limestone, freestone, some small
specimens of an excellent pebble and occasionally broken strata of a
stone which appears to be petrified wood. It is of a black color, and
makes excellent whetstones. Coal or carbonated wood, pumice stone,
lava, and other mineral appearances still continue. The coal appears to
be of better quality. I exposed a specimen of it to the fire, and that
it burned tolerably well; it afforded but little flame or smoke, but
produced a hot and lasting fire.
I ascended to the top of the cut bluff this morning, from whence I
had a most delightful view of the country, the whole of which, except
the valley formed by the Missouri, is void of timber or underbrush,
exposing to the first glance of the spectator immense herds of buffalo,
elk, deer, and antelopes feeding in one common and boundless pasture.
We saw a number of beaver feeding on the bark of the trees along the
verge of the river, several of which we shot. Found them large and fat.
Walking on shore this evening, I met with a buffalo calf which
attached itself to me, and continued to follow close at my heels, until
I embarked and left it. It appeared alarmed at my dog, which was
probably the cause of its so readily attaching itself to me. Captain
Clark informed me that he saw a large drove of buffalo pursued by
wolves today; that they at length caught a calf which was unable to
keep up with the herd. The cows only defend their young so long as they
are able to keep up with the herd, and seldom return any distance in
search of them.
Captain Lewis, 22 April
Captain Lewis, 22> This morning I dispatched Joseph Field up the
Yellowstone River with orders to examine it as far as he could
conveniently and return the same evening. Two others were directed to
bring in the meat we had killed last evening, while I proceeded down
the river with one man in order to take a view of the confluence of
this great river with the Missouri, which we found to be two miles
distant, on a direct line N.W., from our encampment. The bottom land on
the lower side of the Yellowstone River near its mouth, for about one
mile in width, appears to be subject to inundation, while that on the
opposite side of the Missouri and the point formed by the junction of
these rivers is of the common elevation, say from 12 to 18 feet above
the level of the water, and of course not liable to be overflowed
except in extreme high water, which does not appear to be very
frequent. There is more timber in the neighborhood of the junction of
these rivers, and on the Missouri as far below as the White Earth
River, than there is on any part of the Missouri above the entrance of
the Cheyenne River to this place.
About 12 o'clock I heard the discharge of several guns at the
junction of the rivers, which announce to me the arrival of the party
with
Captain Clark. I afterwards learned that they had fired on some
buffalo which they met with at that place, and of which they killed a
cow and several calves-the latter now fine veal. I dispatched one of
the men to Captain Clark requesting him to send up a canoe to take
down the meat we had killed, and our baggage, to his encampment, which
was accordingly complied with.
After I had completed my observations in the evening, I walked down
and joined the party at their encampment on the point of land formed by
the junction of the rivers. Found them all in good health, and much
pleased at having arrived at this long-wished-for spot. And, in order
to add in some measure to the general pleasure which seemed to pervade
our little community, we ordered a dram to be issued to each person.
This soon produced the fiddle, and they spent the evening with much
hilarity, singing and dancing, and seemed as perfectly to forget their
past toils as they appeared regardless of those to come!
In the evening, the man I had sent up the river this morning
returned, and reported that he had ascended it about eight miles on a
straight line; that he had found it crooked, meandering from side to
side of the valley formed by it, which is from four to five miles wide.
The current of the river, gentle, and its bed much interrupted and
broken by sandbars. At the distance of five miles, he passed a large
island well covered with timber, and three miles higher, a large creek
falls in on the S.E. side, above a high bluff in which there are
several strata of coal. The country bordering on this river, as far as
he could perceive - like that of the Missouri - consisted of open
plains. He saw several of the big-horned animals in the course of his
walk, but they were so shy that he could not get a shot at them. He
found a large horn of one of these animals, which he brought with him.
The bed of the Yellowstone River is entirely composed of sand and mud,
not a stone of any kind to be seen in it near its entrance.
Captain Clark measured these rivers just above their confluence:
found the bed of the Missouri 520 yards wide, the water occupying 330.
Its channel deep. The Yellowstone River, including its sand bar, 858
yards, of which the water occupied 297 yards. The deepest part, 12
feet. It was falling at this time and appeared to be nearly at its
summer tide.
The Indians inform that the Yellowstone River is navigable for
pirogues and canoes nearly to its source in the Rocky Mountains, and
that in its course, near these mountains, it passes within less than
half a day's march of a navigable part of the Missouri. Its extreme
sources are adjacent to those of the Missouri, River Platte, and I
think probably with some of the south branch of the Columbia River.
Captain Lewis, 26 April 1805
Tis morning I walked through the point formed by the junction of
the rivers. The woodland extends about a mile when the rivers approach
each other within less than half a mile. Here a beautiful level, low
plain commences, and extends up both rivers for many miles, widening as
the rivers recede from each other, and extending back half a mile to a
plain about 12 feet higher than itself. The low plain appears to be a
few inches higher than high-water mark and, of course, will not be
liable to be overflowed; though where it joins the high plain, a part
of the Missouri, when at its greatest height, passes through a channel
60 or 70 yards wide, and falls into the Yellowstone River.
On the Missouri, about 2 1/2 miles from the entrance of the
Yellowstone River and between this high and low plain, a small lake is
situated, about 200 yards wide, extending along the edge of the high
plain, parallel with the Missouri about one mile. On the point of the
high plain, at the lower extremity of this lake, I think would be the
most eligible site for an establishment. Between this low plain and the
Yellowstone River, there is an extensive body of timbered land
extending up the river for many miles. This site recommended is about
400 yards distant from the Missouri, and about double that distance
from the River Yellowstone. From it, the high plain, rising very
gradually, extends back about three miles to the hills, and continues
with the same width between these hills and the timbered land on the
Yellowstone River, up that stream, for seven or eight miles; and is one
of the handsomest plains I ever beheld.
On the Missouri side, the hills circumscribe its width, and at the
distance of three miles up that river from this site, it is not more
than 400 yards wide. Captain Clark thinks that the lower extremity of
the low plain would be most eligible for this establishment. It is true
that it is much nearer both rivers and might answer very well, but I
think it rather too low to venture a permanent establishment,
particularly if built of brick or other durable materials at any
considerable expense. For, so capricious and versatile are these
rivers, that it is difficult to say how long it will be until they
direct the force of their currents against this narrow part of the low
plain, which, when they do, must shortly yield to their influence. In
such case, a few years only would be necessary for the annihilation of
the plain, and with it the fortification.
I continued my walk on shore. At 11 A.M. the wind became very hard
from N.W., insomuch that the pirogues and canoes were unable either to
proceed or pass the river to me. I was under the necessity, therefore,
of shooting a goose and cooking it for my dinner. The wind abated about
4 P.M., and the party proceeded, though I could not conveniently join
them until night.
Although the game is very abundant and gentle, we only kill as much
as is necessary for food. I believe that two good hunters could
conveniently supply a regiment with provisions. For several days past,
we have observed a great number of buffalo lying dead on the shore;
some of them entire, and others partly devoured by the wolves and bear.
Those animals either drowned during the winter in attempting to pass
the river on the ice, or by swimming across, at present, to bluff banks
where they are unable to ascend and, feeling themselves too weak to
return, remain and perish for the want of food. In this situation we
met with several little parties of them.
Beaver are very abundant. The party kill several of them every day.
The eagles, magpies, and geese have their nests in trees adjacent to
each other. The magpie particularly appears fond of building near the
eagle, as we scarcely see an eagle's nest unaccompanied with two or
three magpie's nests within a short distance. The bald eagles are more
abundant here than I ever observed them in any part of the country.
Set out this morning at the usual hour. The wind was moderate. I
walked on shore with one man. About 8 A.M. we fell in with two brown or
yellow [white] bear, both of which we wounded. One of them made his
escape; the other, after my firing on him, pursued me 70 or 80 yards
but fortunately had been so badly wounded that he was unable to pursue
so closely as to prevent my charging my gun. We again repeated our
fire, and killed him. It was a male, not fully grown. We estimated his
weight at 300 pounds, not having the means of ascertaining it
precisely.
The legs of this bear are somewhat longer than those of the black,
as are its talons and tusks incomparably larger and longer. The
testicles, which in the black bear are placed pretty well back between
the thighs and contained in one pouch like those of the dog and most
quadrupeds, are, in the yellow or brown bear, placed much further
forward, and are suspended in separate pouches, from two to four inches
asunder. Its color is yellowish brown; the eyes small, black, and
piercing. The front of the forelegs near the feet is usually black. The
fur is finer, thicker, and deeper than that of the black bear. These
are all the particulars in which this animal appeared to me to differ
from the black bear. It is a much more furious and formidable animal,
and will frequently pursue the hunter when wounded. It is astonishing
to see the wounds they will bear before they can be put to death. The
Indians may well fear this animal, equipped as they generally are with
their bows and arrows or indifferent fusees; but in the hands of
skillful riflemen, they are by no means as formidable or dangerous as
they have been presented.
Game is still very abundant. We can scarcely cast our eyes in any
direction without perceiving deer, elk, buffalo, or antelopes. The
quantity of wolves appears to increase in the same proportion. They
generally hunt in parties of six, eight, or ten. They kill a great
number of the antelopes at this season. The antelopes are yet meager,
and the females are big with young. The wolves take them most generally
in attempting to swim the river. In this manner, my dog caught one,
drowned it, and brought it on shore. They are but clumsy swimmers,
though on land, when in good order, they are extremely fleet and
durable.
We have frequently seen the wolves in pursuit of the antelope in
the plains. They appear to decoy a single one from a flock, and then
pursue it, alternately relieving each other, until they take it. On
joining Captain Clark, he informed me that he had seen a female and
fawn of the bighorned animal that they ran for some distance with great
apparent ease along the side of the river bluff where it was almost
perpendicular. Two of the party fired on them while in motion, without
effect. We took the flesh of the bear on board and proceeded.
Captain Clark walked on shore this evening; killed a deer, and saw
several of the bighorned animals.
Captain Lewis, 29 April 1805
Captain Clark walked on shore and killed an elk, which he caused to
be butchered by the time I arrived with the party. Here we halted and
dined, it being about 12 o'clock - our usual time of halting for that
purpose. After dinner, Captain Clark pursued his walk while I
continued with the party, it being a rule which we had established
never to be absent at the same time from the party.
We saw vast quantities of buffalo, elk, deer-principally of the
long-tail kind-antelope or goats, beaver, geese, ducks, brant, and some
swan. Near the entrance of the river mentioned in the 10th course 2 Of
this day, we saw an unusual number of porcupines, from which we
determined to call the river after that animal, and accordingly
denominated it Porcupine River. This stream discharges itself into the
Missouri on the starboard side, 2,000 miles above the mouth of the
latter. It is a beautiful bold, running stream, 40 yards wide at its
entrance. The water is transparent, it being the first of this
description that I have yet seen discharge itself into the Missouri.
Captain Lewis, 3 May 1805
n
Captain Lewis, 3 Mayained this morning until about 9 o'clock in
order to repair the rudder irons of the red pirogue, which were broken
last evening in landing. We then set out, the wind hard against us. I
walked on shore this morning. The weather was more pleasant, the snow
had disappeared. The frost seems to have affected the vegetation much
less than could have been expected. The leaves of the cottonwood, the
grass, the box alder, willow, and the yellow flowering pea seem to be
scarcely touched. The rosebushes and honeysuckle seem to have sustained
the most considerable injury. The country on both sides of the Missouri
continues to be open, level, fertile, and beautiful as far as the eye
can reach- which, from some of the eminences, is not short of 30 miles.
The river bottoms are very extensive and contain a much greater
proportion of timber than usual. The fore part of this day, the river
was bordered with timber on both sides, a circumstance which is
extremely rare, and the first which has occurred of anything like the
same extent since we left the Mandans. In the after part of the day, we
passed an extensive beautiful plain on the starboard side which
gradually ascended from the river. I saw immense quantities of buffalo
in every direction, also some elk, deer, and goats. Having an abundance
of meat on hand, I passed them without firing on them. They are
extremely gentle; the bull buffalo, particularly, will scarcely give
way to you. I passed several in the open plain within fifty paces. They
viewed me for a moment as something novel, and then very unconcernedly
continued to feed.
Captain Clark walked on shore this evening, and did not rejoin us
until after dark. He struck the river several miles above our camp and
came down to us. We saw many beaver, some of which the party shot. We
also killed two deer today. Much sign of the brown bear. Passed several
old Indian hunting camps in the course of the day.
Captain Lewis, 4 May 1805
A fine rnin. I walked on shore until after 8 A.M., when we halted
for breakfast, and in the course of my walk killed a deer, which I
carried about a mile and a half to the river. It was in good order.
Soon after setting out, the rudder irons of the white pirogue were
broken by her running foul on a sawyer. She was, however, refitted in a
few minutes with some tugs of rawhide and nails. As usual, saw a great
quantity of game today: buffalo, elk, and goats or antelopes feeding in
every direction. We kill whatever we wish. The buffalo furnish us with
fine veal and fat beef. We also have venison and beaver tails when we
wish them. The flesh of the elk and goat is less esteemed, and
certainly is inferior. We have not been able to take any fish for some
time past. The country is, as yesterday, beautiful in the extreme. We
saw the carcasses of many buffalo lying dead along the shore, partially
devoured by the wolves and bear.
Captain Clark found a den of young wolves in the course of his walk
today, and also saw a great number of those animals. They are very
abundant in this quarter, and are of two species: The small wolf, or
burrowing dog of the prairies, are the inhabitants almost invariably of
the open plains. They usually associate in bands of ten or twelve,
sometimes more, and burrow near some pass or place much frequented by
game. Not being able alone to take a deer or goat, they are rarely ever
found alone but hunt in bands. They frequently watch and seize their
prey near their burrows. In these burrows they raise their young, and
to them they also resort when pursued.
When a person approaches them, they frequently bark- their note
being precisely that of the small dog. They are of an intermediate
size, between that of the fox and dog. Very active, fleet, and
delicately formed; the ears large, erect, and pointed; the head long
and pointed more like that of the fox; tail long and bushy; the hair
and fur also resembles the fox, though [it] is much coarser and
inferior. They are of a pale, reddish-brown color, the eye of a deep
sea-green color, small and piercing. Their talons are rather longer
than those of the ordinary wolf, or that common to the Atlantic states,
none of which are to be found in this quarter nor, I believe, above the
River Platte.
The large wolf found here is not as large as those of the Atlantic
states. They are lower and thicker-made, shorter legged. Their color,
which is not affected by the seasons, is a gray or blackish-brown and
every intermediate shade from that to a cream-colored white. These
wolves resort to the woodlands and are also found in the plains, but
never take refuge in the ground or burrow, so far as I have been able
to inform myself.
We scarcely see a gang of buffalo without observing a parcel of
those faithful shepherds on their skirts, in readiness to take care of
the maimed [and] wounded. The large wolf never barks, but howls as
those of the Atlantic states do.
Captain Clark and Drouilliard killed the largest brown bear this
evening which we have yet seen. It was a most tremendous-looking
animal, and extremely hard to kill. Notwithstanding he had five balls
through his lungs and five others in various parts, he swam more than
half the distance across the river, to a sandbar, and it was at least
twenty minutes before he died. He did not attempt to attack, but fled,
and made the most tremendous roaring from the moment he was shot. We
had no means of weighing this monster.
Captain Clark thought he would weigh 500 pounds. For my own part, I
think the estimate too small by 100 pounds. He measured 8 feet 7 1/2
inches from the nose to the extremity of the hind feet; 5 feet 10 1/2
inches around the breast; 1 foot 11 inches around the middle of the
arm; and 3 feet 11 inches around the neck. His talons, which were five
in number on each foot, were 4 3/8 inches in length. He was in good
order.
We therefore divided him among the party, and made them boil the
oil and put it in a cask for future use. The oil is as hard as hog's
lard when cool-much more so than that of the black bear.
This bear differs from the common black bear in several respects:
its talons are much longer and more blunt; its tail shorter; its hair,
which is of a reddish or bay brown, is longer, thicker, and finer than
that of the black bear, his liver, lungs, and heart are much larger,
even in proportion with his size. The heart, particularly, was as large
as that of a large ox. His maw was also ten times the size of black
bear, and was filled with flesh and fish. His testicles were pendent
from the belly and placed four inches asunder in separate bags or
pouches. This animal also feeds on roots and almost every species of
wild fruit.
Captain Lewis, 5 May 1805
Captain Lewis, 5bearswim the river above us, he disappeared before
we could get in reach of him. I find that the curiosity of our party is
pretty well satisfied with respect to this animal. The formidable
appearance of the male bear killed on the 5th, added to the difficulty
with which they die, even when shot through the vital parts, has
staggered the resolution of several of them [i.e., the men.] Others,
however, seem keen for action with the bear. I expect these gentlemen
will give us some amusement shortly as they [the bears] soon begin now
to copulate. Saw a great quantity of game of every species common here.
Captain Clark walked on shore and killed two elk. They were not in
very good order; we therefore took a part of the meat only. It is now
only amusement for Captain Clark and myself to kill as much meat as
the party can consume. I hope it may continue thus through our whole
route, but this I do not much expect. Two beaver were taken in traps
this morning, and one since shot by one of the party. Saw numbers of
these animals peeping at us as we passed, out of their holes which they
form of a cylindrical shape, by burrowing in the face of the abrupt
banks of the river.
Captain Lewis, 6 May 1805
A very black cloud to the S.W. We set out under a gentle breeze
from the N.E. About 8 o'clock began to rain but not sufficient to wet.
We passed the mouth of a large river on the starboard side, 150 yards
wide, and appears to be navigable. The country through which it passes,
as far as could be seen from the top of a very high hill on which I
was, is a beautiful level plain. This river forks about N.W. from its
mouth 12 or 15 miles. One fork runs from the north and the other to the
west of N.W. The water of this river will justify a belief that it has
its source at a considerable distance, and waters a great extent of
country.
We are willing to believe that this is the river the Minnetarees
call The River Which Scolds at All Others. The country on the larboard
side is high, and broken with much stone scattered on the hills.
In walking on shore with the interpreter and his wife, the squaw
gathered, on the sides of the hills, wild licorice, and the white
apple, so called by the engagŽs, and gave me to eat. The Indians of the
Missouri make great use of the white apple dressed in different ways.
Saw great numbers of buffalo, elk, antelope, and deer, also
black-tailed deer, beaver, and wolves. I killed a beaver which I found
on the bank, and a wolf. The party killed three beaver, one deer. I saw
where an Indian had taken the hair off a goat skin a few days past.
Camped early on the larboard side. The river we passed today we call
Milk River from the peculiar whiteness of its water, which precisely
resembles tea with a considerable mixture of milk.
Captain Clark, 8 May 1805
Captain Clark, 8FONTCOLOR="#556B2F">
About 5 P.M. my attention was struck by one of the party running at
a distance toward us, and making signs and hallooing as if in distress.
I ordered the pirogues to put to, and waited until he arrived. I now
found that it was Bratton, the man with the sore hand whom I had
permitted to walk on shore. He arrived so much out of breath that it
was several minutes before he could tell what had happened. At length
he informed me that in the woody bottom on the larboard side, about
1l/2 miles below us, he had shot a brown bear which immediately turned
on him and pursued him a considerable distance, but he had wounded it
so badly that it could not overtake him.
I immediately turned out with seven of the party in quest of this
monster. We at length found his trail and pursued him about a mile, by
the blood, through very thick brush of rosebushes and the large-leafed
willow. We finally found him concealed in some very thick brush, and
shot him through the skull with two balls.
We proceeded to dress him as soon as possible. We found him in good
order. It was a monstrous beast, not quite so large as that we killed a
few days past but in all other respects much the same. The hair is
remarkably long, fine, and rich, though he appears partially to have
discharged his winter coat.
We now found that Bratton had shot him through the center of the
lungs, notwithstanding which, he had pursued him near half a mile and
had returned more than double that distance, and with his talons had
prepared himself a bed in the earth about 2 feet deep and five long,
and was perfectly alive when we found him, which could not have been
less than two hours after he received the wound.
These bears, being so hard to die, rather intimidate us all. I must
confess that I do not like the gentlemen and had rather fight two
Indians than one bear. There is no other chance to conquer them by a
single shot but by shooting them through the brains, and this becomes
difficult in consequence of two large muscles which cover the sides of
the forehead, and the sharp projection of the center of the frontal
bone, which is also of a pretty good thickness. The fleece and skin
were as much as two men could possibly carry.
By the time we returned, the sun had set, and I determined to
remain here all night, and directed the cooks to render the bear's oil
and put it in the kegs, which was done. There was about eight gallons
of it.
Captain Lewis, 11 May 1805
Captain Lewis, 11our,the weather clear and calm. I walked on shore
this morning for the benefit of exercise which I much wanted, and also
to examine the country and its productions. In these excursions I most
generally went alone, armed with my rifle and espontoon. Thus equipped,
I feel myself more than an equal match for a brown bear, provided I get
him in open woods or near the water, but feel myself a little diffident
with respect to an attack in the open plains. I have therefore come to
a resolution to act on the defensive only should I meet these gentlemen
in the open country.
I ascended the hills and had a view of a rough and broken country
on both sides of the river. On the north side, the summits of the hills
exhibit some scattering pine and cedar; on the south side, the pine has
not yet commenced, though there is some cedar on the face of the hills
and in the little ravines. The chokecherry also grows here in the
hollow' and at the heads of the gullies. The chokecherry has been in
bloom since the ninth inst. This growth has frequently made its
appearance on the Missouri from the neighborhood of the Bald-pated
Prairie to this place.
Captain Lewis, 12 May 1805
In
Captain Lewis, 12in to of the rear canoes discovered a large brown
bear lying in the open grounds about 300 paces from the river, and six
of them went out to attack him -all good hunters. They took the
advantage of a small eminence which concealed them, and got within 40
paces of Bear's oil was a much used edible fat for many years. The
Cherokees liked the oil of the black bear-of which a single animal
might yield 15 gallons. Oil from Plains grizzlies was sold in New
Orleans for many years. Indians sometimes flavored bear's oil with
sassafras. An eighteenth-century white traveler remarks that it was
"sweet and wholesome" and never cloyed the palate him, unperceived. Two
of them reserved their fires as had been previously concerted; the four
others fired nearly at the same time, and put each his bullet through
him. Two of the balls passed through the bulk of both lobes of his
lungs.
In an instant, this monster ran at them with open mouth. The two
who had reserved their fires discharged their pieces at him as he came
toward them. Both of them struck him-one only slightly, and the other,
fortunately, broke his shoulder. This, however, only retarded his
motion for a moment. The men, unable to reload their guns, took to
flight. The bear pursued, and had very nearly overtaken them before
they reached the river. Two of the party betook themselves to a canoe,
and the others separated and concealed them selves among the willows,
[and] reloaded their pieces; each discharged his piece at him as they
had an opportunity. They struck him several times again, but the guns
served only to direct the bear to them. In this manner he pursued two
of them, separately, so dose that they were obliged to throw away their
guns and pouches, and throw themselves into the river, although the
bank was nearly twenty feet perpendicular. So enraged was this animal
that he plunged into the river only a few feet behind the second man he
had compelled to take refuge in the water.
When one of those who still remained on shore shot him through the
head and finally killed him, they then took him on shore and butchered
him, when they found eight balls had passed through him in different
directions. The bear being old, the flesh was indifferent. They
therefore only took the skin and fleece; the latter made us several
gallons of oil. It was after the sun had set before these men came up
with us, where we had been halted by an occurrence which I have now to
recapitulate, and which, although happily passed without ruinous
injury, I cannot recollect but with the utmost trepidation and horror.
This is the upsetting and narrow escape of the white pirogue. It
happened, unfortunately for us this evening, that Charbonneau was at
the helm of this pirogue instead of Drouilliard, who had previously
steered her. Charbonneau cannot swim, and is perhaps the most timid
waterman in the world. Perhaps it was equally unlucky that Captain
Clark and myself were both on shore at that moment, a circumstance
which rarely happened, and though we were on the shore opposite to the
pirogue, were too far distant to be heard, or to do more than remain
spectators of her fate. In this pirogue were embarked our papers,
instruments, books, medicine, a great part of our merchandise-and, in
short, almost every article indispensably necessary to further the view
or ensure the success of the enterprise in which we are now launched to
the distance of 2,200 miles.
Suffice it to say that the pirogue was under sail when a sudden
squall of wind struck her obliquely and turned her considerably. The
steersman, alarmed, instead of putting her before the wind, luffed her
up into it. The wind was so violent that it drew the brace of the
squaresail out of the hand of the man who was attending it, and
instantly upset the pirogue and would have turned her completely
topsy-turvy had it not have been for the resistance made by the awning
against the water.
In this situation, Captain Clark and myself both fired our guns to
attract the attention, if possible, of the crew, and ordered the
halyards to be cut and the sail hauled in, but they did not hear us.
Such was their confusion and consternation at this moment that they
suffered the pirogue to lie on her side for half a minute before they
took the sail in. The pirogue then righted but had filled within an
inch of the gunwales.
Charbonneau, still crying to his God for mercy, had not yet
recollected the rudder, nor could the repeated orders of the bowsman,
Cruzat, bring him to his recollection until he threatened to shoot him
instantly if he did not take hold of the rudder and do his duty.
The waves by this time were running very high, but the fortitude,
resolution, and good conduct of Cruzat saved her. He ordered 2 of the
men to throw out the water with some kettles that fortunately were
convenient, while himself and two others rowed her ashore, where she
arrived scarcely above the water. We now took every article out of her
and laid them to drain as well as we could for the evening, bailed out
the canoe, and secured her.
There were two other men besides Charbonneau on board who could not
swim and who, of course, must also have perished had the pirogue gone
to the bottom. While the pirogue lay on her side, finding I could not
be heard, I, for a moment, forgot my situation, and involuntarily
dropped my gun, threw aside my shot pouch, and was in the act of
unbuttoning my coat, before I recollected the folly of the attempt I
was about to make, which was to throw myself into the river and
endeavor to swim to the pirogue. The pirogue was three hundred yards
distant, the waves so high that a person could scarcely live in any
situation, the water excessively cold, and the stream rapid. Had I
undertaken this project, therefore, there was a hundred to one but what
I should have paid the forfeit of my life for the madness of my
project, but this-had the pirogue been lost-I should have valued but
little.
After having all matters arranged for the evening as well as the
nature of circumstances would permit, we thought it a proper occasion
to console ourselves and cheer the spirits of our men, and accordingly
took a drink of grog, and gave each man a gill of spirits.
Captain Lewis, 14 May 1805
This morning was fair andhe dy proved favorable to our operations.
By 4 o'clock in the evening, our instruments, medicine, merchandise,
provisions, etc., were perfectly dried, repacked, and put on board the
pirogue. The loss we sustained was not so great as we had at first
apprehended. Our medicine sustained the greatest injury, several
articles of which were entirely spoiled and many others considerably
injured. The balance of our losses consisted of some garden seeds, a
small quantity of gunpowder, and a few culinary articles which fell
overboard and sank. The Indian woman, to whom I ascribe equal fortitude
and resolution with any person on board at the time of the accident,
caught and preserved most of the light articles which were washed
overboard.
All matters being now arranged for our departure, we lost no time
in setting out. Proceeded on tolerably well about seven miles and
encamped on the starboard side.
In the early part of the day, two of our men fired on a panther, a
little below our encampment, and wounded it. They informed us that it
was very large, had just killed a deer, partly devoured it, and was in
the act of concealing the balance as they discovered him.
We caught two antelopes at our encampment in attempting to swim the
river. These animals are but lean as yet, and of course not very
pleasant food. I walked on shore this evening and killed a buffalo cow
and calf; we found the calf most excellent veal.
The country on either side of the river is broken, and hills much
higher than usual. The bottoms now become narrow and the timber more
scant. Some scattering pine and cedar on the steep declivities of the
hills. This morning a white bear tore Labiche's coat which he had left
in the plains.
The party with me killed a female brown bear. She was but meager,
and appeared to have suckled young very recently. Captain Clark
narrowly escaped being bitten by a rattlesnake in the course of his
walk. The party killed one this evening at our encampment which, he
informed me, was similar to that he had seen. This snake is smaller
than those common to the Middle Atlantic States, being about 2 feet 6
inches long. It is of a yellowish-brown color on the back and sides,
variegated with one row of oval spots of a dark-brown color lying
transversely over the back from the neck to the tail, and two other
rows of small circular spots of the same color which garnish the sides
along the edge of the scuta. Its belly contains 176 scuta on the belly
and 17 on the tail.
We were roused late at night by the sergeant of the guard and
warned of the danger we were in from a large tree that had taken fire
and which leaned immediately over our lodge. We had the lodge removed,
and a few minutes after a large proportion of the top of the tree fell
on the place the lodge had stood. Had we been a few minutes later, we
should have been crushed to atoms. The wind blew so hard that,
notwithstanding the lodge was fifty paces distant from the fire, it
sustained considerable injury from the burning coals which were thrown
on it. The party were much harassed also by this fire, which
communicated to a collection of fallen timber and could not be
extinguished.
Captain Lewis, 17 May 1805
The wind blew hard this morning from the west. We were enabled to
employ our tow line the greater part of the day and therefore proceeded
on tolerably well. There are now but few sandbars. The river is narrow
and current gentle. The timber consists of a few cottonwood trees along
the verge of the river; the willow has in great measure disappeared. In
the latter part of the day the hills widened, the bottoms became larger
and contained more timber. Captain Clark in the course of his walk this
evening killed four deer, two of which were the black-tailed, or mule,
deer. The skins are now good. They have not yet produced their young.
We saw a number of buffalo, elk, deer, and antelope.
Captain Lewis, 18 May 1805
The last night was disgreeably cold. We were unable to set out
until 8 o'clock A.M. in consequence of a heavy fog which obscured the
river in such a manner that we could not see our way. This is the first
we have experienced in anything like so great a degree. There was also
a fall of dew last evening, which is the second we have experienced
since we have entered this extensive open country. At eight we set out
and proceeded as yesterday, by means of the cord principally. The hills
are high and the country similar to that of yesterday. Captain Clark
walked on shore with two of the hunters and killed a brown bear.
Notwithstanding that it was shot through the heart, it ran at its usual
pace nearly a quarter of a mile before it fell. One of the party
wounded a beaver, and my dog, as usual, swam in to catch it. The beaver
bit him through the hind leg and cut the artery. It was with great
difficulty that I could stop the blood. I fear it will yet prove fatal
to him.
This afternoon the river was crooked, rapid, and containing more
sawyers than we have seen in the same place since we left the entrance
of the River Platte. Captain Clark, in the course of his walk, killed
three deer and a beaver. I also walked on shore this evening a few
miles and killed an elk, a buck, and a beaver. The party killed and
caught 4 other beaver and 3 deer.
Captain Lewis, 19 May 1805
At 11 A.M., we arrived at the entrance of a handsome bold river,
which discharges itself into the Missouri on the larboard side. This
stream we take to be that called by the Minnetarees the Musselshell
River. If it be the same, of which I entertain but little doubt, it
takes its rise, by their information, in the first chain of the Rocky
Mountains, at no great distance from the Yellowstone River, from whence
in its course to this place it passes through a high and broken
country, pretty well timbered, particularly on its borders, and
interspersed with handsome fertile plains and meadows.
Captain Lewis, 20 May 1805
We have caught but few fish since we left the Mandans. They do not
bite freely. What we took were the white cat of 2 to 5 pounds. I
presume that fish are scarce in this part of the river. We encamped
earlier this evening than usual in order to render the oil of a bear
which we killed. I do not believe that the black bear, common to the
lower part of this river and the Atlantic states, exists in this
quarter. We have neither seen one of them nor their tracks, which would
be easily distinguished by its shortness of talons when compared with
the brown grizzly, or white bear. I believe that it is the same species
or family of bears which assumes all those colors at different ages and
seasons of the year.
Captain Lewis, 22 May 1805
The two canoes which we left behind yesterday to bring on the meat
did not arrive this morning until 8 A.M., at which time we set out. The
wind being against us, we did not proceed with so much ease or
expedition as yesterday. We employed the towline principally, which the
banks favored the use of. The current was strong, particularly around
the points against which the current happened to set, and at the
entrances of the little gullies from the hills, these rivulets having
brought down con- siderable quantities of stone, and deposited it at
their entrances, forming partial barriers to the water of the river to
the distance of 40 or 50 feet from the shore. Around these, the water
ran with great violence and compelled us, in some instances, to double
our force in order to get a pirogue or canoe by them.
Captain Lewis, 25 May 1805
In my walk of this day, I saw mountains on either side of the river
at no great distance. Those mountains appeared to be detached, and not
ranges as laid down by the Minnetarees. I also think I saw a range of
high mountains at a great distance to the south-southwest but am not
certain, as the horizon was not clear enough to view it with certainty.
Captain Clark, 25 May 1805
We set out early and proceeded as yesterday. Wind from the S.W. The
river enclosed with very high hills on either side. I took one man and
walked out this morning, and ascended the high country to view the
mountains which I thought I saw yesterday. From the first summit of the
hill I could plainly see the mountains on either side, which I saw
yesterday, and at no great distance from me. Those on the starboard
side are an irregular range, the two extremities of which bore west and
N. west from me. Those mountains on the larboard side appeared to be
several detached knobs or mountains rising from a level open country,
at different distances from me, from southwest to southeast.
On one, the most southwesterly of those mountains, there appeared
to be snow. I crossed a deep hollow and ascended a part of the plain
elevated much higher than where I first viewed the above mountains.
From this point, I beheld the Rocky Mountains for the first time, with
certainty. I could only discover a few of the most elevated points
above the horizon, the most remarkable of which, by my pocket compass,
I found bore S. 60 W. Those points of the Rocky Mountains were covered
with snow, and the sun shone on it in such a manner as to give me a
most plain and satisfactory view.
Whilst I viewed those mountains, I felt a secret pleasure in
finding myself so near the head of the - heretofore conceived -
boundless Missouri. But when I reflected on the difficulties which this
snowy barrier would most probably throw in my way to the Pacific Ocean,
and the sufferings and hardships of myself and party in them, it in
some measure counterbalanced the joy I had felt in the first moments in
which I gazed on them. But, as I have always held it little short of
criminality to anticipate evils, I will allow it to be a good,
comfortable road until I am compelled to believe otherwise.
The high country in which we are at present, and have been passing
for some days, I take to be a continuation of what the Indians, as well
as the French engages, call the Black Hills. This tract of country, so
called, consists of a collection of high, broken, and irregular hills,
and short chains of mountains, sometimes 100 miles in width, and again
becoming much narrower, but always much higher than the country on
either side. They commence about the head of the Kansas River, and to
the west of that river, near the Arkansas River, from whence they take
their course, a little to the west of N.W., approaching the Rocky
Mountains obliquely, passing the River Platte near the forks, and
intercepting the Yellowstone River near the bend of that river, and
passing the Missouri at this place, and probably continuing to swell
the country as far north as the Saskatchewan River, though they are
lower here than they are described to the south, and may therefore
terminate before they reach the Saskatchewan. The Black Hills, in their
course northerly, appear to approach more nearly the Rocky Mountains.
Captain Clark, 26 May 1805
This morning we set forward at an early hour; the weather dark and
cloudy, the air smoky, had a few drops of rain. We employed the cord,
generally, to which we also gave the assistance of the pole at the
riffles and rocky points. These are as numerous, and many of them much
worse than those we passed yesterday. Around those points the water
drives with great force, and we are obliged, in many instances, to
steer our vessels through the apertures formed by the points of large,
sharp rocks which reach a few inches above the surface of the water.
Here, should our cord give way, the bow is instantly driven outward by
the stream and the vessel thrown with her side on the rocks, where she
must inevitably overset or perhaps be dashed to pieces. Our ropes are
but slender--all of them, except one, being made of elk skin and much
worn--frequently wet, and, exposed to the heat of the weather, are weak
and rotten. They have given way several times in the course of the day,
but happily at such places that the vessel had room to wheel free of
the rocks and therefore escaped injury. With every precaution we can
take, it is with much labor and infinite risk that we are enabled to
get around these points.
Found a new Indian lodge pole today which had been brought down by
the stream. It was worn at one end as if dragged by dogs or horses. A
football also, and several other articles, were found, which have been
recently brought down by the current. These are strong evidences of
Indians being on the river above us, and probably at no great distance.
The football is such as I have seen among the Minnetarees, and
therefore think it most probable that they are a band of the
Minnetarees of Fort de Prairie.
Captain Lewis, 28 May 1805
Last night we were all alarmed by a large buffalo bull which swam
over from the opposite shore and coming along the side of the white
pirogue, climbed over it to land. He, then alarmed, ran up the bank in
full speed directly toward the fires, and was within 18 inches of the
heads of some of the men who lay sleeping, before the sentinel could
alarm him or make him change his course. Still more alarmed, he now
took his direction immediately toward our lodge, passing between 4
fires, and within a few inches of the heads of one range of the men as
they yet lay sleeping
When he came near the tent, my dog saved us by causing him to
change his course a second time, which he did by turning a little to
the right, and was quickly out of sight leaving us by this time all in
an uproar with our guns in our hands, inquiring of each other the cause
of the alarm, which after a few moments was explained by the sentinel.
We were happy to find no one hurt.
The next morning we found that the buffalo, in passing the pirogue,
had trodden on a rifle which belonged to Captain Clark's black man,
who had negligently left her in the pirogue. The rifle was much bent.
He had also broken the spindle, pivot, and shattered the stock of one
of the blunderbusses on board. With this damage I felt well content -
happy, indeed, that we had sustained no further injury. It appears that
the white pirogue, which contains our most valuable stores, is attended
by some evil genius.
This morning we set out at an early hour and proceeded as usual by
the cord. At the distance of 2 1/2 miles, passed a handsome river which
discharged itself on the larboard side. I walked on shore and ascended
this river about a mile and a half in order to examine it. I found this
river about 100 yards wide from bank to bank, the water occupying about
75 yards. The bed was formed of gravel and mud, with some sand. It
appeared to contain much more water than the Musselshell River; was
more rapid, but equally navigable. There were no large stones or rocks
in its bed to obstruct the navigation. The banks were low, yet appeared
seldom to overflow. The water of this river is clearer, much, than any
we have met with.
Great abundance of the Argalia or big-horned animals in the high
country through which this river passes. Captain Clark, who ascended
this river much higher than I did, has thought proper to call it
Judith's River. The bottoms of this stream, as far as I could see, were
wider and contained more timber than the Missouri. Here I saw some box
alder intermixed with the cottonwood willow; rosebushes and
honeysuckle, with some red willow, constitute the under- growth.
On the Missouri, just above the entrance of the Big Horn (Judith)
River, I counted the remains of the fires of 126 Indian lodges which
appeared to be of very recent date, perhaps 12 or 15 days. Captain
Clark also saw a large encampment just above the entrance of this river
on the starboard side of rather older date; probably they were the same
Indians. The Indian woman with us examined the moccasins which we found
at these encampments and informed us that they were not of her nation,
the Snake Indians. But she believed they were some of the Indians who
inhabit the country on this side of the Rocky Mountains and north of
the Missouri, and I think it most probable that they were the
Minnetarees of Fort de Prairie.
At the distance of 6 l/2 miles from our encampment of last night,
we passed a very bad rapid to which we gave the name of the Ash Rapid,
from a few trees of that wood growing near them. This is the first ash
I have seen for a great distance. At this place, the hills again
approach the river closely on both sides, and the same scene which we
had on the 27th and 28th in the morning, again presents itself, and the
rocky points and riffles rather more numerous and worse. There was but
little timber. Salts, coal, still appear.
Today we passed, on the starboard side, the remains of a vast many
mangled carcasses of buffalo, which had been driven over a precipice of
120 feet by the Indians, and perished. The water appeared to have
washed away a part of this immense pile of slaughter, and still there
remained the fragments of at least a hundred carcasses. They created a
most horrid stench. In this man- ner, the Indians of the Missouri
destroy vast herds of buffalo at a stroke. For this purpose, one of the
most active and fleet young men is selected and disguised in a robe of
buf- falo skin, having also the skin of the buffalo's head with the
ears and horns fastened on his head in form of a cap. Thus caparisoned,
he places himself at a convenient distance between a herd of buffalo
and a precipice proper for the purpose, which happens in many places on
this river for miles together. The other Indians now surround the herd
on the back and flanks and, at a signal agreed on, all show themselves
at the same time moving forward toward the buffalo.
The disguised Indian or decoy has taken care to place himself
sufficiently near the buffalo to be noticed by them when they take to
flight, and running before them, they follow him in full speed to the
precipice; the cattle behind driving those in front over and, seeing
them go, do not look or hesitate about following until the whole are
precipitated down the precipice, forming one common mass of dead and
mangled carcasses. The decoy, in the meantime, has taken care to secure
himself in some cranny or crevice of the cliff which he has previously
prepared for that purpose.
The part of the decoy, I am informed, is extremely dangerous. If
they are not very fleet runners, the buffalo tread them underfoot and
crush them to death, and sometimes drive them over the precipice also,
where they perish in common with the buffalo. We saw a great many
wolves in the neighborhood of these mangled carcasses. They were fat
and extremely gentle. Captain Clark, who was on shore, killed one of
them with his espontoon.
Just above this place we came to for dinner, opposite the entrance
of a bold running river 40 yards wide which falls in on the larboard
side. This stream we called Slaughter River. Its bottoms are but narrow
and contain scarcely any timber. Our situation was a narrow bottom on
the starboard, possessing some cottonwood. Soon after we landed it
began to blow and rain, and as there was no appearance of even wood
enough to make our fires for some distance above, we determined to
remain here until the next morning, and accordingly fixed our camp and
gave each man a small dram. Notwithstanding the allowance of spirits we
issued did not exceed one-half gill per man, several of them were
considerably affected by it. Such is the effect of abstaining for some
time the use of spirituous liquors. They were all very merry. The
hunters killed an elk this evening, and Captain Clark killed two
beaver.
Captain Lewis, 29 May 1805
The obstructions of rocky points and riffles still continue as
yesterday. At those places the men are compelled to be in the water
even to their armpits, and the water is yet very cold, and so frequent
are those points that they are one- fourth of their time in the water.
Added to this, the banks and bluffs along which they are obliged to
pass are so slippery, and the mud so tenacious, that they are unable to
wear their moccasins, and in that situation, dragging the heavy burden
of a canoe, and walking occasionally for several hundred yards over the
sharp fragments of rocks which tumble from the cliffs and garnish the
borders of the river. In short, their labor is incredibly painful and
great, yet those faithful fellows bear it without a murmur. The towrope
of the white pirogue--the only one, indeed, of hemp, and that on which
we most depended--gave way today at a bad point. The pirogue swung and
but slightly touched a rock, yet was very near oversetting. I fear her
evil genius will play so many pranks with her that she will go to the
bottom one of these days.
Captain Clark walked on shore this morning but found it so
excessively bad that he shortly returned. At 12 o'clock M. we came to
for refreshment and gave the men a dram, which they received with much
cheerfulness--and well de- served.
The hills and river cliffs which we passed today exhibit a most
romantic appearance. The bluffs of the river rise to the height of from
two to three hundred feet, and in most places perpendicular. They are
formed of remarkable white sandstone which is sufficiently soft to give
way readily to the impression of water.
Two or three thin horizontal strata of white freestone, on which
the rains or water make no impression, lie imbedded in these cliffs of
soft stone, near the upper part of them. The earth on the top of these
cliffs is a dark rich loam which, forming a gradually ascending plain,
extends back from 1/2 a mile to a mile, where the hills commence and
rise abruptly to a height of about 300 feet more. The water, in the
course of time, in descending from those hills and plains, on either
side of the river, has trickled down the soft sand cliffs and worn it
into a thousand grotesque figures which, with the help of a little
imagination, and an oblique view, at a distance are made to represent
elegant ranges of lofty free- stone buildings, having their parapets
well stocked with statuary.
Columns of various scupture, both grooved and plain, are also seen
supporting long galleries in front of those buildings. In other places,
on a much nearer approach and with the help of less imagination, we see
the remains or ruins of elegant buildings: some columns standing and
al- most entire, with their pedestals and capitals; others retain- ing
their pedestals but deprived by time or accident of their capitals;
some lying prostrate and broken; others in the form of vast pyramids of
conic structure bearing a series of other pyramids on their tops,
becoming less as they ascend and finally terminating in a sharp point.
Niches and alcoves of various forms and sizes are seen at different
heights as we pass.
Captain Lewis, 31 May 1805
Game becoming more abundant this morning, I thought it best now to
lose no time or suffer an opportunity to escape in providing the
necessary quantity of elk skins to cover my leather boat, which I now
expect I shall be obliged to use shortly. Accordingly, I walked on
shore most of the day with some of the hunters for that purpose, and
killed 6 elk, 2 buffalo, 2 mule deer, and a bear. These animals were
all in good order. We therefore took as much of the meat as our canoes
and pirogues could conveniently carry.
The bear was very near catching Drouilliard. It also pursued
Charbonneau,who fired his gun in the air as he ran but fortunately
eluded the vigilance of the bear, by secreting himself very securely in
the bushes, until Drouilliard finally killed it by a shot in the
head--the only shot, indeed, that will conquer the ferocity of those
tremendous animals.
Captain Lewis, 2 June 1805
This morning early we passed over and formed a camp on the point
formed by the junction of two large rivers. An interesting question was
now to be determined: Which of these rivers was the Missouri, or that
which the Minnetarees call Amahte Arzzha, or Missouri, and which they
had described to us as approaching very near to the Columbia River. To
mistake the stream at this period of the season-- two months of the
traveling season having now elapsed-- and to ascend such stream to the
Rocky Mountains or perhaps much farther before we could inform
ourselves whether it did approach the Columbia or not, and then be
obliged to return and take the other stream, would not only lose us the
whole of this season but would probably so dishearten the party that it
might defeat the expedition altogether.
Convinced we were that the utmost circumspection and caution was
necessary in deciding on the stream to be taken. To this end, an
investigation of both streams was the first thing to be done--to learn
their widths, depths, comparative rapidity of their currents, and
thence the comparative bodies of water furnished by each. Accordingly,
we dispatched two light canoes with three men in each up those streams.
We also sent out several small parties by land, with instructions to
penetrate the country as far as they conveniently can, permitting
themselves to return this evening, and endeavor, if possible, to
discover the distant bearing of those rivers by ascending the rising
grounds. Between the time of my A.M. and meridian,
Captain Clark and myself strolled out to the top of the heights in
the fork of these rivers, from whence we had an extensive and most
enchanting view. The country, in every direction around us, was one
vast plain in which innumerable herds of buffalo were seen, attended by
their shepherds, the wolves. The solitary antelope, which now had their
young, were distributed over its face. Some herds of elk were also
seen. The verdure perfectly clothed the ground. The weather was
pleasant and fair. To the south we saw a range of lofty mountains which
we supposed to be a continuation of the S. mountains, stretching
themselves from S.E. to N.W., terminating abruptly about S. west from
us. These were partially covered with snow. Behind these mountains, and
at a great distance, a second and more lofty range of mountains
appeared to stretch across the country in the same direction with the
others, reaching from west, to the N. of N.W., where their snowy tops
lost themselves beneath the horizon. This last range was perfectly
covered with snow. The direction of the rivers could be seen but little
way, soon losing the break of their channels to our view in the common
plain.
On our return to camp, we bore a little to the left and discovered
a handsome little river falling into the N. fork on larboard side about
1 l/2 miles above our camp. This little river has as much timber in its
bottoms as either of the larger streams. There are a great number of
prickly pears in these plains. The chokecherry grows here in abundance,
both in the river bottoms and in the steep ravines along the river
bluffs. Saw the yellow and red currants, not yet ripe; also the
gooseberry, which begins to ripen. The wild rose, which grows here in
great abundance in the bottoms of all these rivers, is now in full
bloom, and adds not a little to the beauty of the scenery.
We took the width of the two rivers, found the left-hand or S. fork
372 yards, and the N. fork 200. The north fork is deeper than the
other, but its current not so swift. Its waters run in the same boiling
and rolling manner which has uniformly characterized the Missouri
throughout its whole course so far. Its waters are of a whitish brown
color, very thick and turbid, also characteristic of the Missouri,
while the south fork is perfectly transparent, runs very rapid, but
with a smooth, unruffled surface, its bottom composed of round and flat
smooth stones like most rivers issuing from a mountainous country. The
bed of the N. fork composed of some gravel but principally mud.
In short, the air and character of this river is so precisely that
of the Missouri below that the party with very few exceptions have
already pronounced the N. fork to be the Missouri. Myself and Captain
Clark, not quite so precipitate have not yet decided, but if we were to
give our opinions I believe we should be in the minority.
Certain it is that the north fork gives the coloring matter and
character which is retained from hence to the Gulf of Mexico. I am
confident that this river rises in and passes a great distance through
an open plain country. I expect that it has some of its sources on the
eastern side of the Rocky Mountains, south of the Saskatchewan, but
that it does not penetrate the first range of these mountains, and that
much the greater part of its sources are in a northwardly direction
toward the lower and middle parts of the Saskatchewan in the open
plains. Convinced I am that, if it penetrated the Rocky Mountains to
any great distance, its waters would be clearer, unless it should run
an immense distance indeed after leaving those mountains through these
level plains in order to acquire its turbid hue. What astonishes us a
little is that the Indians, who appeared to be so well acquainted with
the geography of this country, should not have mentioned this river on
right hand, if it be not the Missouri. The River That Scolds at All
Others, as they call it-- if there is in reality such a one--ought,
agreeably to their account, to have fallen in a considerable distance
below. And, on the other hand, if this right-hand or north fork be the
Missouri, I am equally astonished at their not mentioning the south
fork, which they must have passed in order to get to those large falls
which they mention on the Missouri. Thus have our cogitating faculties
been busily employed all day.
Those who have remained at camp today have been busily engaged in
dressing skins for clothing, notwithstanding that many of them have
their feet so mangled and bruised with the stones and rough ground over
which they passed barefoot that they can scarcely walk or stand. At
least, it is with great pain they do either. For some days past, they
were unable to wear their moccasins. They have fallen off considerably,
but notwithstanding the difficulties past or those which seem now to
menace us, they still remain perfectly cheerful.
In the evening, the parties whom we had sent out returned,
agreeably to instructions. The parties who had been sent up the rivers
in canoes informed that they ascended some distance and had then left
their canoes and walked up the rivers a considerable distance farther,
barely leaving themselves time to return. The north fork was not so
rapid as the other and afforded the easiest navigation, of course. Six
[7] feet appeared to be the shallowest water of the S. branch, and 5
feet that of the N. Their accounts were by no means satisfactory, nor
did the information we acquired bring us nigher to the decision of our
question, or determine us which stream to take.
Joseph and Reuben Fields reported that they had been up the south
fork about seven miles on a straight course, somewhat N. of W., and
that there the little river which discharges itself into the north fork
just above us, was within 100 yards of the S. fork; that they came down
this little river and found it a bold running stream about 40 yards
wide, containing much timber in its bottom, consisting of the narrow-
and wide-leafed cottonwood with some birch and box alder, undergrowth
willows, rosebushes, currants, They saw a great number of elk on this
river, and some beaver.
Those accounts being by no means satisfactory as to the fundamental
point, Captain Clark and myself concluded to set out early the next
morning with a small party each, and ascend these rivers until we could
perfectly satisfy ourselves of the one which it would be most expedient
for us to take on our main journey to the Pacific. Accordingly, it was
agreed that I should ascend the right-hand fork and he the left. I gave
orders to Sergeant Pryor, Drouilliard, Shields, Windsor, Cruzat, and
Lepage, to hold themselves in readiness to accompany me in the morning.
Captain Clark also selected Reuben and Joseph Fields, Sergeant Gass,
Shannon, and his black man, York, to accompany him. We agreed to go up
those rivers one day and a half's march, or further if it should appear
necessary to satisfy us more fully of the point in question. The
hunters killed 2 buffalo, 6 elk, and 4 deer today. The evening proved
cloudy. We took a drink of grog this evening and gave the men a dram,
and made all matters ready for an early departure in the morning. I had
now my sack and blanket wrapped in readiness to swing on my back, which
is the first time in my life that I had ever prepared a burden of this
kind, and I am fully convinced that it will not be the last.
Captain Lewis, 3 June 1805
This morning early, Captain Clark departed, and at the same time I
passed the right-hand fork opposite to our camp below a small island.
From hence, I steered N. 30 W. 4 1/2 to a commanding eminence. Here I
took the following bearings of the mountains which were in view: The
North Mountains appear to change their direction from that of being
parallel with the Missouri, turning to the north and terminating
abruptly, their termination bearing N. 48 E., distant, by estimate, 30
miles. The South Mountains appear to turn to the S., also terminating
abruptly, their extremity bearing S. 8 W., distant 25 miles. The Barn
Mountain, a lofty mountain so called from its resemblance to the roof
of a large barn, is a separate mountain, and appears rather to the
right of, and retreating from, the extremity of the S. Mountains. This
bore S. 38 W., distant 35 miles. The north fork, which I am now
ascending, lies to my left and appears to make a considerable bend to
the N.W. On its western border, a range of hills about 10 miles long
appear to lie parallel with the river, and from hence bear N. 60 W. To
the N. of this range of hills, an elevated point of the river bluff on
its larboard side bore N. 72 W., distant 12 miles. To this last object
I now directed my course through a high, level, dry, open plain. The
whole country, in fact, appears to be one continued plain to the foot
of the mountains or as far as eye can reach. Ths soil appears dark,
rich, and fertile, yet the grass is by no means as high nor does it
look so luxuriant as I should have expected. It is short, just
sufficient to conceal the ground. Great abundance of prickly pears,
which are extremely troublesome, as the thorns very readily pierce the
foot through the moccasin. They are so numerous that it requires
one-half of the traveler's attention to avoid them.
Captain Lewis, 4 June 1805
Some little rain and snow last night. The mountains to our S.E.
covered with snow this morning. Air very cold and raining a little. We
saw 8 buffalo opposite. They made two attempts to cross, the water
being so swift they could not. About the time we were setting out,
three white bear approached our camp. We killed the three and ate part
of one; and set out, and proceeded on N. 20 W., 11 miles. Struck the
river at many places in this distance, to a ridge on the N. side from
the top of which I could plainly see a mountain to the south and west
covered with snow, at a long distance. The mountains opposite to us, to
the S.E., are also covered with snow this morning. A high ridge from
those mountains approaches the river on the S.E. side, forming some
cliffs of hard dark stone. From the ridge at which place I struck the
river last, I could discover that the river ran west of south a long
distance, and has a strong rapid current. As this river continued its
width, depth, and rapidity, and the course west of south, going up
further would be useless. I determined to return. I accordingly set out
through the plain on a course N. 30 E. on my return and struck the
little river, at 20 miles, passing through a level plain. At the little
river we killed 2 buck elk and dined on their marrowbones. Proceeded on
a few miles and camped, having killed 2 deer which were very fat. Some
few drops of rain today, the evening fair, wind hard from the N.E. I
saw great numbers of elk and white-tailed deer, some beaver, antelope,
mule deer, and wolves, and one bear on this little river. Marked my
name in a tree N. side near the ridge where the little river breaks
through.
Captain Clark, 5 June 1805
I now became well convinced that this branch of the Missouri had
its direction too much to the north for our route to the Pacific, and
therefore determined to return the next day after taking an observation
of the meridian altitude in order to fix the latitude of the place. The
fore part of the last evening was fair, but in the latter part of the
night clouded up and continued so with short intervals of sunshine
until a little before noon, when the whole horizon was overcast, and I,
of course, disappointed in making the observation which I much wished.
I had sent Sergeant Pryor and Windsor, early this morning, with
orders to proceed up the river to some commanding eminence and take its
bearing as far as possible. In the meantime, the four others and myself
were busily engaged in making two rafts on which we purposed descending
the river. We had just completed this work when Sergeant Pryor and
Windsor returned, it being about noon. They reported that they had
proceeded from hence S. 70 W. 6 miles to the summit of a commanding
eminence from whence the river on their left was about 2 l/2 miles
distant; that a point of its larboard bluff, which was visible, bore S.
80 W., distant about 15 miles; that the river on their left bent
gradually around to this point, and from thence seemed to run
northwardly.
We now took dinner and embarked with our plunder and five elk skins
on the rafts, but were soon convinced that this mode of navigation was
hazardous, particularly with those rafts, they being too small and
slender. We wet a part of our baggage and were near losing one of our
guns. I therefore determined to abandon the rafts and return as we had
come--by land. I regretted much being obliged to leave my elk skins,
which I wanted to assist in forming my leather boat, those we had
prepared at Fort Mandan being injured in such manner that they would
not answer.
We again swung our packs and took our way through the open plains
for about 12 miles, when we struck the river. The wind blew a storm
from N.E., accompanied by frequent showers of rain. We were wet and
very cold. Continued our route down the river only a few miles before
the abruptness of the cliffs and their near approach to the river
compelled us to take the plains and once more face the storm. Here we
bore rather too much to the north and it was late in the evening before
we reached the river. In our way, we killed two buffalo and took with
us as much of the flesh as served us that night and a part of the next
day. We encamped a little below the entrance of the large dry creek
called Lark Creek, having traveled but 23 miles since noon. It
continues to rain and we have no shelter; an uncomfortable night's rest
is the natural consequence.
Captain Lewis, 6 June 1805
A cloudy, cold, raw day. Wind hard from the N.E. We set out early
and traveled down the little river which was immediately in our course.
On this river we killed 7 deer for their skins. The bottoms of this
little river are, in every respect (except in extent), like the large
bottoms of the Missouri below the forks, containing a great proportion
of a kind of cottonwood with a leaf resembling a wild cherry. I also
observed wild tansy on this little river in great quantities. We halted
at 12 o'clock and ate a part of a fat buck. After dinner we ascended
the plain, at which time it began to rain, and continued all day. At 5
o'clock, we arrived at our camp on the point, where I expected to meet
Captain Lewis. He did not return this evening. Myself and party much
fatigued, having walked constantly as hard as we could march over a dry
hard plain, descending and ascending steep river hills and gullies. In
my absence the party had killed an elk and two buffalo. I sent out for
the meat, a part of which was brought in. Nothing remarkable had
transpired at camp in my absence.
Captain Clark, 6 June 1805
It continued to rain almost without intermission last night, and,
as I expected, we had a most disagreeable and restless night. Our camp
possessing no allurements, we left our watery beds at an early hour and
continued our route down the river. It still continues to rain, the
wind hard from N.E., and cold; the ground remarkably slippery, insomuch
that we were unable to walk on the sides of the bluffs where we had
passed as we ascended the river. Notwithstanding the rain that has now
fallen, the earth of these bluffs is not wet to a greater depth than 2
inches. In its present state it is precisely like walking over frozen
ground which is thawed to a small depth, and slips equally bad. This
clay not only appears to require more water to saturate it, as I before
observed, than any earth I ever observed, but when saturated it
appears, on the other hand, to yield its moisture with equal
difficulty.
In passing along the face of one of these bluffs today, I slipped
at a narrow pass about 30 yards in length, and but for a quick and
fortunate recovery by means of my espontoon, I should have been
precipitated into the river down a craggy precipice of about ninety
feet. I had scarcely reached a place on which I could stand with
tolerable safety, even with the assistance of my espontoon, before I
heard a voice behind me cry out, "Good God, Captain, what shall I do?"
On turning about, I found it was Windsor, who had slipped and
fallen about the center of this narrow pass, and was Iying prostrate on
his belly, with his right-hand arm and leg over the precipice while he
was holding on with the left arm and foot as well as he could, which
appeared to be with much difficulty. I discovered his danger, and the
trepidation which he was in gave me still further concern, for I
expected every instant to see him lose his strength and slip off.
Although much alarmed at his situation, I disguised my feelings and
spoke very calmly to him, and assured him that he was in no kind of
danger to take the knife out of his belt behind him with his right
hand, and dig a hole with it in the face of the bank to receive his
right foot, which he did, and then raised himself to his knees. I then
directed him to take off his moccasins and to come forward on his hands
and knees, holding the knife in one hand and the gun in the other. This
he happily effected and escaped. Those who were some little distance
behind returned by my orders and waded the river at the foot of the
bluff, where the water was breast deep. It was useless we knew, to
attempt the plains on this part of the river in consequence of the
numerous steep ravines which intersected, and which were quite as bad
as the river bluffs We therefore continued our route down the river,
sometimes in the mud and water of the bottom lands, at others in the
river to our breasts, and when the water became so deep that we could
not wade, we cut footsteps in the face of the steep bluffs with our
knives and proceeded. We continued our disagreeable march through the
rain, mud, and water until late in the evening, having traveled only
about 18 miles, and encamped in an old Indian stick lodge which
afforded us a dry and comfortable shelter.
It continued to rain moderately all last night. This morning was
cloudy until about ten o'clock, when it cleared off and became a fine
day. We breakfasted, and set out about sunrise and continued our route
down the river bottoms through the mud and water as yesterday, though
the road was somewhat better than yesterday, and we were not so often
compelled to wade in the river. We passed some dangerous and difficult
bluffs. The river bottoms affording all the timber which is to be seen
in the country, they are filled with innumerable little birds that
resort thither, either for shelter or to build their nests. When sun
began to shine today, these birds appeared to be very gay and sang most
enchantingly. I observed among them the brown thrush, robin,
turtledove, linnet, goldfinch, the large and small blackbird, wren, and
several other birds of less note. Some of the inhabitants of the
prairies also take refuge in these woods at night, or from a storm.
The whole of my party to a man, except myself, were fully persuaded
that this river was the Missouri. But, being fully of opinion that it
was neither the main stream, nor that which it would be advisable for
us to take, I determined to give it a name, and in honor of Miss Maria
W--d, called it Maria's River. It is true that the hue of the waters of
this turbulent and troubled stream but illy comport with the pure,
celestial virtues and amiable qualifications of that lovely fair one.
But, on the other hand, it is a noble river, one destined to become, in
my opinion, an object of contention between the two great powers of
America and Great Britain with respect to the adjustment of the
northwesterly boundary of the former. And that it will become one of
the most interesting branches of the Missouri in a commercial point of
view I have but little doubt as it abounds with animals of the fur
kind, and most probably furnishes a safe and direct communication to
that productive country of valuable furs exclusively enjoyed at present
by the subjects of His Britannic Majesty. In addition to which, it
passes through a rich, fertile, and one of the most beautifully
picturesque countries that I ever beheld, through the wide expanse of
which innumerable herds of living animals are seen, its borders
garnished with one continued garden of roses, while its lofty and open
forests are the habitation of myriads of the feathered tribes who
salute the ear of the passing traveler with their wild and simple yet
sweet and cheerful melody.
I arrived at camp about 5 o'clock in the evening much fatigued,
where I found Captain Clark and the balance of the party waiting our
return with some anxiety for our safety, having been absent near two
days longer than we had engaged to return. On our way to camp we had
killed 4 deer and two antelopes, the skins of which, as well as those
we killed while on the route, we brought with us. Maria's River may be
stated generally from sixty to a hundred yards wide, with a strong and
steady current and possessing 5 feet of water in the most shallow
parts.
I now gave myself this evening to rest from my labors, took a drink
of grog, and gave the men who had accompanied me each a dram.
Captain Clark plotted the courses of the two rivers as far as we
had ascended them. I now began more than ever to suspect the veracity
of Mr. Fidler, or the correctness of his instruments. For I see that
Arrowsmith, in his late map of N. America, has laid down a remarkable
mountain in the chain of the Rocky Mountains, called the Tooth, nearly
as far south as latitude 45, and this is said to be from the
discoveries of Mr. Fidler. We are now within a hundred miles of the
Rocky Mountains and I find from my observation of the 3rd inst. that
the latitude of this place is 47 24' 12" 8. The river must, therefore,
turn much to the south between this and the Rocky Mountains to have
permitted Mr. Fidler to have passed along the eastern border of these
mountains as far S. as nearly 45 without even seeing it. But from
hence, as far as Captain Clark had ascended the S. fork or Missouri,
being the distance of 55 miles (45 miles in a straight line), its
course is S. 29¿ W., and it still appeared to bear considerably to the
W. of south as far as he could see it. I think, therefore, that we
shall find that the Missouri enters the Rocky Mountains to the north of
45¿.
Captain Lewis, 8 June 1805
Rained moderately all the last night and some this morning until 10
o'clock. I am somewhat uneasy for Captain Lewis and party as days have
now passed the time he was to have returned. I had all the arms put in
order and permitted several men to hunt, aired and dried our stores,
The rivers at this point have fallen 6 inches since our arrival. At 10
o'clock cleared away and became fair. The wind all the morning from the
S.W., and hard. The water of the south fork is of a reddish-brown color
this morning; the other river of a whitish color, as usual. The
mountains to the south covered with snow. Wind shifted to the N.E the
evening. About 5 o'clock Captain Lewis arrived with the party, much
fatigued, and informed me that he had as- cended the river about 60
miles by land, and that the river had a bold current about 80 or 100
yards wide, the bottoms of gravel and mud, and may be estimated at 5
feet water in shoalest parts.
Some rain in the evening. The left-hand fork rose a little.
Captain Clark 8 June 1805
We determined to deposit at this place the large red pirogue, all
the heavy baggage which we could possibly do without, and some
provisions, salt, tools, powder and lead with a view to lighten our
vessels and at the same time to strengthen their crews by means of the
seven hands who have been heretofore employed in navigating the red
pirogue. Accordingly we set some hands to digging a hole or cellar for
the reception of our stores. These holes in the ground, or deposits,
are called, by the engages, "caches." On inquiry I found that Cruzat
was well acquainted with this business and therefore left the
management of it entirely to him. Today we examined our maps and
compared the information, derived as well from them as from the
Indians, and fully settled in our minds the propriety of adopting the
south fork for the Missouri, as that which it would be most expedient
for us to take.
The information of Mr. Fidler, incorrect as it is, strongly argued
the necessity of taking the south fork, for if he has been along the
eastern side of the Rocky Mountains as far as even latitude 47 ¿, which
I think fully as far south as he ever was in that direction, and saw
only small rivulets making down from those mountains, the presumption
is very strong that those little streams do not penetrate the Rocky
Mountains to such distance as would afford rational grounds for a
conjecture that they had their sources near any navigable branch of the
Columbia. And if he has seen those rivulets as far south as 47¿, they
are most probably the waters of some northern branch of the Missouri or
south fork, probably the river called by the Indians Medicine River. We
therefore cannot hope by going northwardly of this place, being already
in latitude 47 ¿ 24", to find a stream between this place and the
Saskatchewan which does penetrate the Rocky Mountains and which,
agreeably to the information of the Indians with respect to the
Missouri, does possess a navigable current some distance in those
mountains. The Indian information also argued strongly Án favor of the
south fork. They informed us that the water of the Missouri was nearly
transparent at the Great Falls (this is the case with the water of the
south fork), that the falls lay a little to the south of sunset from
them (this is also probable, as we are only a few minutes north of Fort
Mandan, and the south fork bears considerably south from hence to the
mountains); and that falls are below the Rocky Mountains and near the
northern termination of one range of those mountains. A range of
mountains which appear behind the S. mountains (and which appear to
terminate S.W. from this place and on this side of the unbroken chain
of the Rocky Mountains) gives us hope that this part of their
information is also correct, and there is sufficient distance between
this and the mountains for many, and I fear, for us, much too many
falls.
Another impression on my mind is that, if the Indians had passed
any stream as large as the south fork on their way to the Missouri,
they would not have omitted mentioning it. And the south fork, from its
size and complexion of its waters, must enter the Rocky Mountains and,
in my opinion, penetrates them to a great distance, or else whence such
an immense body of water as it discharges? It cannot proceed from the
dry plains to the N.W. of the Yellowstone River on the east side of the
Rocky Mountains, for those numerous large dry channels which we
witnessed on that side as we ascended the Missouri forbid such a
conjecture. And that it should take its sources to the N.W. under those
mountains, the travels of Mr. Fidler forbid us to believe.
Those ideas as they occurred to me I endeavored to impress on the
minds of the party, all of whom, except Captain Clark, being still
firm in the belief that the N. fork was the Missouri and that which we
ought to take. They said, very cheerfully, that they were ready to
follow us anywhere we thought proper to direct; but that they still
thought that the other was the river, and that they were afraid that
the south fork would soon terminate in the mountains and leave us at a
great distance from the Columbia.
Cruzat, who had been an old Missouri navigator and who, from his
integrity, knowledge, and skill as a waterman, had acquired the
confidence of every individual of the party, declared it as his opinion
that the N. fork was the true genuine Missouri and could be no other.
Finding them so determined in this belief, and wishing, if we were
in an error, to be able to detect it and rectify it as soon as
possible, it was agreed between Captain Clark and myself that one of
us should set out with a small party by land up the south fork, and
continue our route up it until we found the falls or reached the snowy
mountains, by which means we should be enabled to determine this
question pretty accurately.
This expedition I preferred undertaking, as Captain Clark is the
best waterman, and determined to set out the day after tomorrow. I
wished to make some further observations at this place, and as we had
determined to leave our blacksmith's bellows and tools here, it was
necessary to repair some of our arms, and particularly my air gun, the
main spring of which was broken, before we left this place. These and
some other preparations will necessarily detain us two, perhaps three,
days.
I felt myself very unwell this morning, and took a portion of
salts, from which I feel much relief this evening.
The cache being completed, I walked to it and examined its
construction. It is in a high plain about 40 yards distant from a steep
bluff of the south branch on its northern side The situation a dry one,
which is always necessary. A place being fixed on for a cache, a circle
about 20 inches in diameter is first described, the turf or sod of this
circle is carefully removed, being taken out as entire as possible in
order that it may be replaced in the same situation when the cache is
filled and secured. This circular hole is then sunk perpendicularly to
the depth of one foot, if the ground be not firm, somewhat deeper. They
then begin to work it out wider as they proceed downward, until they
get it about six or seven feet deep, giving it nearly the shape of the
kettle, or lower part of a large still. Its bottom is also somewhat
sunk in the center.
The dimensions of the cache are in proportion to the quantity of
articles intended to be deposited. As the earth is dug, it is handed up
in a vessel and carefully laid on a skin or cloth, and then carried to
some place where it can be thrown in such manner as to conceal it,
usually into some running stream where it is washed away and leaves no
traces which might lead to the discovery of the cache.
Before the goods are deposited, they must be well dried. A parcel
of small dry sticks are then collected, and with them a floor is made,
three or four inches thick, which is then covered with some dry hay or
a raw hide well dried. On this, the articles are deposited, taking care
to keep them from touching the walls by putting other dry sticks
between as you stow away the merchandise. When nearly full, the goods
are covered with a skin, and earth thrown in and well rammed until,
with the addition of the turf first removed, the hole is on a level
with the surface of the ground. In this manner, dried skins or
merchandise will keep perfectly sound for several years.
The traders of the Missouri, particularly those engaged in the
trade with the Sioux, are obliged to have frequent recourse to this
method in order to avoid being robbed.
Most of the men are busily engaged dressing skins for clothing. In
the evening, Cruzat gave us some music on the violin and the men passed
the evening in dancing, singing, and were extremely cheerful.
Captain Lewis, 9 June 1805
The day being fair and fine, we dried all our baggage and
merchandise. Shields renewed the mainspring of my air gun. We have been
much indebted to the ingenuity of this man on many occasions. Without
having served any regular apprenticeship to any trade, he makes his own
tools, principally, and works extremely well in either wood or metal,
and in this way has been extremely serviceable to us, as well as being
a good hunter and an excellent waterman.
In order to guard against accidents, we thought it well to conceal
some ammunition here, and accordingly buried a tin canister of 4 lbs.
of powder and an adequate quantity of lead near our tent, a canister of
6 lbs. lead and an axe, in a thicket up the S. fork, three hundred
yards distant from the point. We concluded that we still could spare
more ammunition for this deposit. Captain Clark was therefore to make
a further deposit in the morning. In addition to one keg of 20 lbs. and
an adequate proportion of lead which had been laid by to be buried in
the large cache, we now selected the articles to be deposited in this
cache which consisted of two best falling axes, one auger, a set of
planes, some files, blacksmith's bellows, and hammers, stake, tongs, 1
keg of flour, 2 kegs of parched meal, 2 kegs of pork, 1 keg of salt,
some chisels, a cooper's awl, some tin cups, 2 muskets, 3 brown
bearskins, beaver skins, horns of the big-horned animal, a part of the
men's robes, clothing, and all their superfluous baggage of every
description, and beaver traps.
We drew up the red pirogue into the middle of a small island at the
entrance of Maria's River, and secured and made her fast to the trees
to prevent the high floods from carrying her off. Put my brand on
several trees standing near her, and covered her with brush to shelter
her from the effects of the sun. At 3 P.M. we had a hard wind from the
S.W., which continued about an hour, attended with thunder and rain. As
soon as the shower had passed over we drew out our canoes, corked,
repaired, and loaded them I still feel myself somewhat unwell with the
dysentery, but determined to set out in the morning up the south fork
or Missouri, leaving Captain Clark to complete the deposit and follow
me by water with the party. Accordingly, gave orders to Drouilliard,
Joseph Fields, Gibson, and Goodrich to hold themselves in readiness to
accompany me in the morning. Sacagawea, our Indian woman, is very sick
this evening. Captain Clark bled her. The night was cloudy with some
rain.
This morning I felt much better but somewhat weakened by my
disorder. At 8 A.M., I swung my pack and set forward with my little
party. Proceeded to the point where Rose [Tansy] River, a branch of
Maria's River, approaches the Missouri so nearly. From this height we
discovered a herd of elk on the Missouri, just above us, to which we
descended and soon killed four of them. We butchered them and hung up
the meat and skins in view of the river in order that the party might
get them.
I determined to take dinner here, but before the meal was prepared
I was taken with such violent pain in the intestines that I was unable
to partake of the feast of marrowbones My pain still increased, and
toward evening was attended with a high fever. Finding myself unable to
march, I determined to prepare a camp of some willow boughs and remain
all night. Having brought no medicine with me, I resolved to try an
experiment with some simplex, and the chokecherry which grew abundantly
in the bottom first struck my attention.
I directed a parcel of the small twigs to be gathered stepped of
their leaves, cut into pieces of about two inches in length, and boiled
in water until a strong black decoction of an astringent bitter taste
was produced. At sunset I took a pint of this decoction, and about an
hour after repeated the dose. By 10 in the evening, I was entirely
relieved from pain, and in fact, every symptom of the disorder forsook
me. My fever abated, a gentle perspiration was produced, and I had a
comfortable and refreshing night's rest.
Goodrich, who is remarkably fond of fishing, caught several dozen
fish of two different species, one about 9 inches long, of white color,
round, and in form and fins resembling the white chub common to the
Potomac. The other species is precisely the form and about the size of
the well-known fish called the hickory shad, or old wife.
Captain Lewis, 10 June 1805
This morning I felt myself quite revived, took another portion of
my decoction, and set out at sunrise. I now bore out from the river in
order to avoid the steep ravines of the river, which usually make out
in the plain to the distance of one or two miles. After gaining the
level plain, my course was a little to the west of S.W. Having traveled
about 12 miles by 9 in the morning, the sun became warm, and I bore a
little to the south in order to gain the river, as well to obtain water
to allay my thirst as to kill something for breakfast. For the plain
through which we had been passing possesses no water, and is so level
that we cannot approach the buffalo within shot before they discover us
and take to flight. We arrived at the river about 10 A.M. having
traveled about 15 miles. At this place there is a handsome open bottom
with some cottonwood timber. Here we met with two large bear and killed
them both at the first fire, a circumstance which, I believe, has never
happened with the party in killing the brown bear before. We dressed
the bear, breakfasted on a part of one of them, and hung the meat and
skins on the trees out of the reach of the wolves. I left a note on a
stick near the river for Captain Clark informing him of my progress,
After refreshing ourselves about two hours, we again ascended the
bluffs and gained the high plain. Saw a great number of burrowing
squirrels in the plains today, also wolves, antelopes, mule deer, and
immense herds of buffalo. We passed a ridge of land considerably higher
than the adjacent plain on either side. From this height, we had a most
beautiful and picturesque view of the Rocky Mountains which were
perfectly covered with snow, and reaching from S.E. to the N. of N W.
They appear to be formed of several ranges, each succeeding range
rising higher than the preceding one, until the most distant appear to
lose their snowy tops in the clouds. This was an august spectacle and
still rendered more formidable by the recollection that we had them to
pass. We traveled about twelve miles when we again struck the Missouri
at a handsome little bottom of cottonwood timber, and although the sun
had not yet set, I felt myself somewhat weary, being weakened, I
presume, by my late disorder and therefore determined to remain here
during the balance of the day and night, having marched about 27 miles
today. On our way, in the evening, we had killed a buffalo, an
antelope, and three mule deer, and taken a sufficient quantity of the
best of the flesh of these animals for three meals, which we had
brought with us. This evening I ate very heartily, and after penning
the transactions of the day amused myself catching those white fish
mentioned yesterday. They are here in great abundance. I caught upwards
of a dozen in a few minutes.
Captain Lewis, 12 June 1805
Saw a number of rattlesnakes today. One of the men caught one by
the head, in catching hold of a bush on which his head lay reclined.
Three canoes were in great danger today; one dipped water, another very
near turning over, At 2 o'clock P.M. a few drops of rain. I walked
through a point and killed a buck elk and deer, and we camped on the
starboard side. The interpreter's woman very sick. One man has a felon
rising on his hand; the other, with the toothache, has taken cold in
the jaw,
Captain Clark, 12 June 1805
This morning we set out about sunrise after taking breakfast off
our venison and fish. We again ascended the hills of the river and
gained the level country. Fearing that the river bore to the south, and
that I might pass the Falls if they existed between this and the snowy
mountains, I altered my course nearly to the south and proceeded
through the plain. I sent Fields on my right and Drouilliard and Gibson
on my left, with orders to kill some meat and join me at the river,
where I should halt for dinner.
I had proceeded on this course about two miles with Goodrich at
some distance behind me, when my ears were saluted with the agreeable
sound of a fall of water, and advancing a little further. I saw the
spray rise above the plain like a column of smoke. which would
frequently disappear again in an instant, caused, I presume, by the
wind which blew pretty hard from the S.W. I did not, however, lose my
direction to this point, which soon began to make a roaring too
tremendous to be mistaken for any cause short of the Great Falls of the
Missouri. Here I arrived about 12 o clock, having traveled, by
estimate, about 15 miles. I hurried down the hill, which was about 200
feet high and difficult of access, to gaze on this sublimely grand
spectacle. I took my position on the top of some rocks about 20 feet
high opposite the center of the Falls. This chain of rocks appears once
to have formed a part of those over which the waters tumbled, but in
the course of time has been separated from it to the distance of 150
yards, lying parallel to it, and an abutment against which the water,
after falling over the precipice, beats with great fury. This barrier
extends on the right to the perpendicular cliff which forms that border
of the river, but to the distance of 120 yards next to the cliff it is
but a few feet above the level of the water, and here the water in very
high tides appears to pass in a channel of 40 yards next to the higher
part of the ledge of rocks. On the left, it extends within 80 or 90
yards of the larboard cliff, which is also perpendicular. Between this
abrupt extremity of the ledge of rocks and the perpendicular bluff, the
whole body of water passes with incredible swiftness.
Immediately at the cascade, the river is about 300 yards wide.
About 90 or 100 yards of this, next the larboard bluff, is a smooth
even sheet of water falling over a precipice of at least 80 feet; the
remaining part, about 200 yards wide, on my right, forms the grandest
sight I ever beheld. The height of the fall is the same as the other,
but the irregular and somewhat projecting rocks below receive the water
in its passage down, and break it into a perfect white foam which
assumes a thousand forms in a moment, sometimes flying up in jets of
sparkling foam to the height of fifteen or twenty feet, which are
scarcely formed before large rolling bodies of the same beaten and
foaming water are thrown over and conceal them. In short, the rocks
seem to be most happily fixed to present a sheet of the whitest beaten
froth for 200 yards in length and about 80 feet perpendicular.
The water, after descending, strikes against the abutment before
mentioned, or that on which I stand, and seems to reverberate, and
being met by the more impetuous current, they roll and swell into
half-formed billows of great height which rise and again disappear in
an instant. The abutment of rock defends a handsome little bottom of
about three acres which is diversified and agreeably shaded with some
cottonwood trees.
In the lower extremity of the bottom there is a very thick grove of
the same kind of trees which are small. In this wood, there are several
Indian lodges formed of sticks. A few small cedar grow near the ledge
of rocks where I rest. Below the point of these rocks, at a small
distance, the river is divided by a large rock which rises several feet
above the water, and extends downward with the stream for about 20
yards. About a mile before the water arrives at the pitch, it descends
very rapidly, and is confined on the larboard side by a perpendicular
cliff of about 100 feet. On the starboard side it is also perpendicular
for about three hundred yards above the pitch, where it is then broken
by the discharge of a small ravine, down which the buffalo have a large
beaten road to the water, for it is but in very few places that these
animals can obtain water near this place, owing to the steep and
inaccessible banks. I see several skeletons of the buffalo lying in the
edge of the water near the starboard bluff which I presume have been
swept down by the current and precipitated over this tremendous fall.
About 300 yards below me, there is another abutment of solid rock
with a perpendicular face and about 60 feet high, which projects from
the starboard side at right angles to the distance of 134 yards, and
terminates the lower part nearly of the bottom before mentioned, there
being a passage around the end of this abutment, between it and the
river, of about 20 yards. Here the river again assumes its usual width,
soon spreading to near 300 yards but still continuing its rapidity.
From the reflection of the sun on the spray or mist which arises from
these Falls, there is a beautiful rainbow produced which adds not a
little to the beauty of this majestically grand scenery.
After writing this imperfect description, I again viewed the Falls,
and was so much disgusted with the imperfect idea which it conveyed of
the scene, that I determined to draw my pen across it and begin again;
but then reflected that I could not perhaps succeed better than penning
the first impressions of the mind. I wished for the pencil of Salvator
Rosa, a Titian, or the pen of Thomson, that I might be enabled to give
to the enlightened world some just idea of this truly magnificent and
sublimely grand object which has, from the commencement of time, been
concealed from the view of civilized man. But this was fruitless and
vain. I most sincerely regretted that I had not brought a camera
obscure with me, by the assistance of which even I could have hoped to
have done better, but alas, this was also out of my reach.
I therefore, with the assistance of my pen only, endeavored to
trace some of the stronger features of this scene by the assistance of
which, and my recollection aided by some able pencil, I hope still to
give to the world some faint idea of an object which at this moment
fills me with such pleasure and astonishment; and which of its kind, I
will venture to assert, is second to but one in the known world.
I retired to the shade of a tree, where I determined to fix my camp
for the present, and dispatch a man in the morning to inform Captain
Clark and the party of my success in finding the Falls, and settle in
their minds all further doubts as to the Missouri. The hunters now
arrived, loaded with excellent buffalo meat, and informed me that they
had killed three very fat cows about 3/4 of a mile from hence. I
directed them, after they had refreshed themselves, to go back and
butcher them and bring another load of meat each to our camp,
determining to employ those who remained with me in drying meat for the
party against their arrival. In about two hours, or at 4 o'clock P.M.,
they set out on this duty, and I walked down the river about three
miles to discover, if possible, some place to which the canoes might
arrive, or at which they might be drawn on shore in order to be taken
by land above the falls, but returned without effecting either of these
objectives.
The river was one continued scene of rapids and cascades, which I
readily perceived could not be encountered with our canoes, and the
cliffs still retained their perpendicular structure, and were from 150
to 200 feet high. In short, the river appears here to have worn a
channel in the process of time through a solid rock.
On my return, I found the party at camp. They had butchered the
buffalo and brought in some more meat, as I had directed. Goodrich had
caught half a dozen very fine trout and a number of both species of the
white fish. These trout (caught in the Falls) are from sixteen to
twenty-three inches in length, precisely resemble our mountain or
speckled trout in form and the position of their fins, but the specks
on these are of a deep black instead of the red or gold color of those
common to the U. States. These are furnished long sharp teeth on the
palate and tongue, and have generally a small dash of red on each side
behind the front ventral fins. The flesh is of a pale yellowish red or,
when in good order, of a rose red.
I am induced to believe that the brown, the white, and the grizzly
bear of this country are the same species, only differing in color from
age or more probably from the same natural cause that many other
animals of the same family differ in color. One of those which we
killed yesterday was of a cream-colored white, while the other in
company with it was of the common bay or reddish brown, which seems to
be the most usual color of them. The white one appeared from its talons
and teeth to be the youngest; it was smaller than the other, and
although a monstrous beast, we supposed that it had not yet attained
its growth, and that it was a little upwards of two years old. The
young cubs which we have killed have always been of a brownish-white,
but none of them as white as that we killed yesterday. One other that
we killed some time since had a white stripe or list of about eleven
inches wide entirely around his body just behind the shoulders, and was
much darker than these bear usually are.
My fare is really sumptuous this evening: Buffalo's humps, tongues,
and marrowbones, fine trout, parched meal, pepper and salt, and a good
appetite. The last is not considered the least of the luxuries.
Captain Lewis, 13 June 1805
A fair morning. Some dew this morning. The Indian woman very sick.
I gave her a dose of salts. We set out early. At a mile and l/2, passed
a small rapid stream on the larboard side, which heads in a mountain to
the S.E., 12 or 15 miles, which at this time is covered with snow. We
call this stream Snow River, as it is the conveyance of the melted snow
from that mountain at present. Numbers of geese and goslings. The geese
cannot fly at this season. Gooseberries are ripe and in great
abundance. The yellow currant is also common, not yet ripe. Killed a
buffalo and camped on the larboard side, near an old Indian fortified
camp. One man sick, and three with swellings. The Indian woman very
sick.
Captain Clark, 13 June 1805
This morning at sunrise I dispatched Joseph Fields with a letter to
Captain Clark, and ordered him to keep sufficiently near the river
to observe its situation in order that he might be enabled to give
Captain Clark an idea of the point at which it would be best to
halt to make our portage. I set one man preparing a scaffold and
collecting wood to dry the meat. Sent the others to bring in the
balance of the buffalo meat; or at least the part which the wolves had
left us, for those fellows are ever at hand, and ready to partake with
us the moment we kill a buffalo. And there is no means of putting the
meat out of their reach in those plains. The two men, shortly after,
returned with the meat and informed me that the wolves had devoured the
greater part of the meat.
About ten o'clock this morning, while the men were engaged with the
meat, I took my gun and espontoon and thought I would walk a few miles
and see where the rapids terminated above, and return to dinner.
Accordingly, I set out and proceeded up the river about S.W. After
passing one continued rapid and three small cascades of about four or
five feet each at the distance of about five miles, I arrived at a fall
of about 19 feet. The river is here about 400 yards wide. This pitch,
which I called the Crooked Falls, occupies about three-fourths of the
width of the river, commencing on the south side, extends obliquely
upward about 150 yards, then, forming an acute angle, extends downward
nearly to the commencement of four small islands lying near the N.
shore. Among these islands and between them and the lower 1 extremity
of the perpendicular pitch, being a distance of 100 yards or upwards,
the water glides down the side of a sloping rock with a velocity almost
equal to that of its perpendicular descent. Just above this rapid the
river makes a sudden bend to the right, or northwardly. I should have
returned from hence; but, hearing a tremendous roaring above me, I
continued my route across the point of a hill a few hundred yards
further, and was again presented by one of the most beautiful objects
in nature, a cascade of about fifty feet perpendicular stretching at
right angles across the river from side to side to the distance of at
least a quarter of a mile. Here the river pitches over a shelving rock,
with an edge as regular and as straight as if formed by art, without a
niche or break in it. The water descends in one even and uninterrupted
sheet to the bottom, where, dashing against the rocky bottom, it rises
into foaming billows of great height and rapidly glides away, hissing,
flashing, and sparkling as it departs. The spray rises, from one
extremity to the other, to 50 feet. I now thought that if a skillful
painter had been asked to make a beautiful cascade, he would most
probably have presented the precise image of this one. Nor could I for
some time determine on which of those two great cataracts to bestow the
palm on this, or that which I had discovered yesterday. At length I
determined between these two great rivals for glory, that this was
pleasingly beautiful, while the other was sublimely grand.
I had scarcely unfixed my eyes from this pleasing object before I
discovered another fall above at the distance of half a mile. Thus
invited, I did not once think of returning, but hurried thither to
amuse myself with this newly discovered object. I found this to be a
cascade of about 14 feet, possessing a perpendicular pitch of about 6
feet. This was tolerably regular, stretching across the river, from
bank to bank, where it was about a quarter of a mile wide. In any other
neighborhood but this, such a cascade would probably be extolled for
its beauty and magnificence, but here I passed it by with but little
attention, determining, as I had proceeded so far, to continue my route
to the head of the rapids if it should even detain me all night. At
every rapid, cataract and cascade I discovered that the bluffs grew
lower, or that the bed of the river rose nearer to a level with the
plains.
Still pursuing the river, with its course about S.W., passing a
continuous scene of rapids and small cascades, at the distance of 2 1/2
miles I arrived at another cataract of 26 feet. This is not immediately
perpendicular. A rock about 1/3 of its descent seems to protrude to a
small distance and receives the water in its passage downward and gives
a curve to the water, though it falls mostly with a regular and smooth
sheet.
The river is near six hundred yards wide at this place: a beautiful
level plain on the S. side only a few feet above the level of the
pitch; on the N. side, where I am, the country is more broken, and
immediately behind me, near the river, a high hill. Below this fall, at
a little distance, a beautiful little island, well timbered, is
situated about the middle of the river. In this island, on a cottonwood
tree, an eagle has placed her nest. A more inaccessible spot I believe
she could not have found, for neither man nor beast dare pass those
gulfs which separate her little domain from the shores. The water is
also broken in such manner as it descends over this pitch that the mist
or spray rises to a considerable height. This fall is certainly much
the greatest I ever beheld except those two which I have mentioned. It
is incomparably a greater cataract and a more noble, interesting object
than the celebrated falls of Potomac or Schuylkill,
Just above this is another cascade of about 5 feet, above which the
water, as far as I could see, began to abate of its velocity, and I
therefore determined to ascend the hill behind me, which promised a
fine prospect of the adjacent country; nor was I disappointed at my
arrival at its summit. From hence, I overlooked a most beautiful and
extensive plain reaching from the river to the base of the snow-clad
mountains to the S. and S.West. I also observed the Missouri,
stretching its meandering course to the south through this plain to a
great distance, filled to its even and grassy brim. Another large river
flowed in on its western side, about four miles above me, and extended
itself through a level and fertile valley of three miles in width, a
great distance to the N.W., rendered more conspicuous by the timber
which garnished its borders. In these plains, and more particularly in
the valley just below me, immense herds of buffalo are feeding. The
Missouri, just above this hill, makes a bend to the south, where it
lies a smooth; even, and unruffled sheet of water, nearly a mile in
width, bearing on its watery bosom vast flocks of geese which feed at
pleasure in the delightful pasture on either border. The young geese
are now completely feathered except the wings which, both in the young
and old, are yet deficient.
After feasting my eyes on this ravishing prospect and resting
myself a few minutes, I determined to proceed as far as the river which
I saw discharge itself on the west side of the Missouri, convinced that
it was the river which the Indians call Medicine River, and which they
informed us fell into the Missouri just above the falls. I descended
the hill and directed my course to the bend of the Missouri, near which
there was a herd of at least a thousand buffalo. Here I thought it
would be well to kill a buffalo and leave him until my return from the
river, and if I then found that I had not time to get back to camp this
evening, to remain all night here, there being a few sticks of
driftwood lying along the shore which would answer for my fire, and a
few scattering cottonwood trees a few hundred yards below, which would
afford me at least the semblance of a shelter. Under this impression, I
selected a fat buffalo and shot him very well, through the lungs.
While I was gazing attentively on the poor animal discharging blood
in streams from his mouth and nostrils, expecting him to fall every
instant, and having entirely forgotten to reload my rifle, a large
white, or rather, brown, bear had perceived and crept on me within
twenty steps before I discovered him. In the first moment, I drew up my
gun to shoot but at the same instant recollected that she was not
loaded, and that he was too near for me to hope to perform this
operation before he reached me, as he was then briskly advancing on me.
It was an open level plain, not a bush within miles nor a tree within
less than three hundred yards of me. The river bank was sloping and not
more than three feet above the level of the water. In short, there was
no place by means of which I could conceal myself from this monster
until I could charge my rifle.
In this situation, I thought of retreating in a brisk walk as fast
as he was advancing until I could reach a tree about 300 yards below
me, but I had no sooner turned myself about but he pitched at me,
open-mouthed and full speed. I ran about 80 yards, and found he gained
on me fast. I then ran into the water. The idea struck me to get into
the water to such depth that I could stand and he would be obliged to
swim, and that I could, in that situation, defend myself with my
espontoon. Accordingly, I ran hastily into the water about waist deep
and faced about and presented the point of my espontoon.
At this instant, he arrived at the edge of the water within about
twenty feet of me. The moment I put myself in this attitude of defense,
he suddenly wheeled about as if frightened, declined the combat on such
unequal grounds, and retreated with quite as great precipitation as he
had just before pursued me. As soon as I saw him run off in that
manner, I returned to the shore and charged my gun, which I had still
retained in my hand throughout this curious adventure. I saw him run
through the level open plain about three miles, till he disappeared in
the woods on Medicine River. During the whole of this distance he ran
at full speed, sometimes appearing to look behind him as if he expected
pursuit.
I now began to reflect on this novel occurrence and endeavored to
account for this sudden retreat of the bear. I at first thought that
perhaps he had not smelled me before he arrived at the water's edge so
near me, but I then reflected that he had pursued me for about 80 or 90
yards before I took to the water, and on examination saw the ground
torn with his talons immediately on the impression of my steps; and the
cause of his alarm still remains with me mysterious and unaccountable.
So it was, and I felt myself not a little gratified that he had
declined the combat. My gun reloaded, I felt confidence once more in my
strength, and determined not to be thwarted in my design of visiting
Medicine River, but determined never again to suffer my piece to be
longer empty than the time she necessarily required to charge her.
I passed through the plain nearly in the direction which the bear
had run to Medicine River. Found it a handsome stream, about 200 yards
wide, with a gentle current, apparently deep. Its waters clear, and
banks, which were formed principally of dark brown and blue clay, were
about the height of those of the Missouri, or from 3 to 5 feet. Yet
they had not the appearance of ever being overflowed, a circumstance
which I did not expect so immediately in the neighborhood of the
mountains, from whence I should have supposed that sudden and immense
torrents would issue at certain seasons of the year. But the reverse is
absolutely the case. I am therefore compelled to believe that the snowy
mountains yield their waters slowly, being partially affected every day
by the influence of the sun only, and never suddenly melted down by
hasty showers of rain.
Having examined Medicine River, I now determined to return, having
by my estimate about 12 miles to walk. I looked at my watch and found
it was half after six P.M. In returning through the level bottom of
Medicine River, and about 200 yards distant from the Missouri, my
direction led me directly to an animal that I at first supposed was a
wolf. But on nearer approach, or about sixty paces distant, I
discovered that it was not. Its color was a brownish yellow. It was
standing near its burrow, and when I approached it thus nearly, it
crouched itself down like a cat, looking immediately at me as if it
designed to spring on me. I took aim at it and fired. It instantly
disappeared in its burrow. I loaded my gun, and examined the place,
which was dusty, and saw the track, from which I am still further
convinced that it was of the tiger kind. Whether I struck it or not, I
could not determine, but I am almost confident that I did. My gun is
true, and I had a steady rest by means of my espontoon, which I have
found very serviceable to me in this way, in the open plains.
It now seemed to me that all the beasts of the neighborhood had
made a league to destroy me, or that some fortune was disposed to amuse
herself at my expense, for I had not proceeded more than 300 yards from
the burrow of this tiger cat, before three bull buffalo, which were
feeding with a large herd about half a mile from me on my left,
separated from the herd and ran full speed toward me. I thought at
least to give them some amusement, and altered my direction to meet
them. When they arrived within a hundred yards they made a halt, took a
good view of me, and retreated with precipitation. I then continued my
route homeward, passed the buffalo which I had killed, but did not
think it prudent to remain all night at this place, which really, from
the succession of curious adventures, wore the impression on my mind of
enchantment. At some times, for a moment, I thought it might be a
dream, but the prickly pears which pierced my feet very severely once
in a while, particularly after it grew dark, convinced me that I was
really awake, and that it was necessary to make the best of my way to
camp.
It was some time after dark before I returned to the party. I found
them extremely uneasy for my safety. They had formed a thousand
conjectures, all of which equally forboding my death, which they had so
far settled among them that they had already agreed on the route which
each should take in the morning to search for me. I felt myself much
fatigued, but ate a hearty supper and took a good night's rest. The
weather being warm, I had left my leather overshirt and had worn only a
yellow flannel one.
Captain Lewis, 14 June 1805
A fine morning. The Indian woman complaining all night, and
excessively bad this morning. Her case is somewhat dangerous. Two men
with the toothache, 2 with tumors, and one man with a tumor and a
slight fever. Passed the camp Captain Lewis made the first night, at
which place he had left part of two bears, their skins, Three men with
tumors went on shore and stayed out all night. One of them killed 2
buffalo, a part of which we made use of for breakfast.
The current excessively rapid, more so as we ascend. We find great
difficulty in getting the pirogue and canoes up in safety. Canoes take
in water frequently.
At 4 o'clock this evening, Joe Fields returned from Captain Lewis
with a letter for me. Captain Lewis dates his letter from the Great
Falls of the Missouri, which, Fields informs me, is about 20 miles in
advance and about 10 miles above the place I left the river the time I
was up last week. Captain Lewis informs me that those falls in part
answer the description given of them by the Indians, much higher; the
eagle's nest which they describe is there. From those signs, he is
convinced of this being the river the Indians call the Missouri.
He intends examining the river above, until my arrival at a point
from which we can make a portage, which he is apprehensive will be at
least 5 miles, and both above and below there are several small pitches
and swift troubled water. We made only 10 miles today, and camped on
the larboard side. Much hard slate in the cliffs and but a small
quantity of timber.
Captain Clark, 14 June 1805
This morning the men again were sent to bring in some more meat
which Drouilliard had killed yesterday and continued the operation of
drying it. I amused myself in fishing and sleeping away the fatigues of
yesterday. I caught a number of very fine trout, which I made Goodrich
dry. Goodrich also caught about two dozen and several small cat of a
yellow color, which would weigh about 4 pounds. The tail was separated
with a deep angular notch like that of the white cat of the Missouri,
from which indeed they differed only in color.
When I awoke from my sleep today, I found a large rattlesnake
coiled on the leaning trunk of a tree under the shade of which I had
been lying at the distance of about ten feet from him. I killed the
snake and found that he had 176 scuta on the abdomen and 17 half-formed
scuta on the tail. It was of the same kind which I had frequently seen
before. They do not differ in their colors from the rattlesnake common
to the Middle Atlantic States, but considerably in the form and figures
of those colors.
This evening after dark Joseph Fields returned and informed me that
Captain Clark had arrived with the party at the foot of a rapid
about 5 miles below which he did not think proper to ascend, and would
wait my arrival there. I had discovered from my journey yesterday that
a portage on this side of the river will be attended by much difficulty
in consequence of several deep ravines which intersect the plains
nearly at right angles with the river to a considerable distance, while
the south side appears to be a delightful smooth, unbroken plain. The
bearings of the river also make it probable that the portage will be
shorter on that side than on this. I directed Fields to return early in
the morning to Captain Clark and request him to send up a party of men
for the dried meat which we had made. I find a very heavy dew on the
grass about my camp every morning, which no doubt proceeds from the
mist of the falls, as it takes place nowhere in the plains nor on the
river, except here.
Captain Lewis, 15 June 1805
A fair morning and warm. We set out at the usual time and proceeded
on with great difficulty, as the river is more rapid. We can hear the
falls this morning very distinctly. Our Indian woman sick and
low-spirited. I gave her the bark and applied it externally to her
region, which revived her much.
The current excessively rapid and difficult to ascend. Great
numbers of dangerous places, and the fatigue which we have to encounter
is incredible: the men in the water from morning until night, hauling
the cord and boats, walking on sharp rocks and round slippery stones
which alternately cut their feet and throw them down. Notwithstanding
all this difficulty, they go with great cheerfulness. Added to those
difficulties, the rattlesnakes are innumerable and require great
caution to prevent being bitten.
We passed a small river on the larboard side about 30 yards wide,
very rapid, which heads in the mountains to the S.E. I went up this
river 5 miles. It has some timber in its bottoms and a fall of 15 feet
at one place. Above this river, the bluffs are of red earth mixed with
strata of black stone. Below this little river, we passed a white clay
which mixes with water like flour in every respect.
The Indian woman much worse this evening. She will not take any
medicine. Her husband petitions to return, River more rapid.
Captain Clark set out early this morning with five men to examine
the country and survey the river and portage, as had been concerted
last evening. I set six men at work to prepare four sets of truck
wheels with couplings, tongues and bodies, that they might either be
used without the bodies for transporting our canoes, or with them in
transporting our baggage. I found that the elk skins I had prepared for
my boat were insufficient to complete her, some of them having become
damaged by the weather and being frequently wet. To make up this
deficiency, I sent out two hunters this morning to hunt elk.
The balance of the party I employed first in unloading the white
pirogue, which we intend leaving at this place, and bringing the whole
of our baggage together and arranging it in proper order near our camp.
This duty being completed, I employed them in taking five of the small
canoes up the creek, which we now call Portage Creek, about 1 3/4
miles. Here I had them taken out and laid in the sun to dry.
From this place there is a gradual ascent to the top of the high
plain, to which we can now take them with ease. The bluffs of this
creek below and those of the river above its entrance are so steep that
it would be almost impracticable to have gotten them on the plain.
We found much difficulty in getting the canoes up this creek to the
distance we were compelled to take them, in consequence of the rapids
and rocks which obstruct the channel of the creek. One of the canoes
overset and was very near injuring 2 men essentially. Just above the
canoes, the creek has a perpendicular fall of 5 feet and the cliffs
again become very steep and high. We were fortunate enough to find one
cottonwood tree, just below the entrance of Portage Creek, that was
large enough to make our carriage wheels about 22 inches in diameter.
Fortunate I say, because I do not believe that we could find another of
the same size, perfectly sound, within 20 miles of us. The cottonwood
which we are obliged to employ in the other parts of the work is
extremely illy calculated for it, being soft and brittle.
We have made two axletrees of the mast of the white pirogue, which
I hope will answer tolerably well, though it is rather small. The
Indian woman much better today. I have still continued the same course
of medicine. She is free from pain, clear of fever, her pulse regular,
and eats as heartily as I am willing to permit her, of broiled buffalo
well seasoned with pepper and salt, and rich soup of the same meat. I
think, therefore, that there is every rational hope of her recovery.
Saw a vast number of buffalo feeding in every direction around us
in the plains, others coming down in large herds to water at the river.
The fragments of many carcasses of these poor animals daily pass down
the river, thus mangled I presume, in descending those immense
cataracts above us. As the buffalo generally go in large herds to
water, and the passages to the river about the falls are narrow and
steep, the hinder part of the herd press those in front out of their
depth, and the water instantly takes them over the cataracts, where
they are instantly crushed to death without the possibility of
escaping. In this manner, I have seen ten or a dozen disappear in a few
minutes. Their mangled carcasses lie along the shores below the falls
in considerable quantities and afford fine amusement for the bear,
wolves, and birds of prey. This may be one reason- and I think not a
bad one, either-that the bear are so tenacious of their right of spoil
in this neighborhood.
Captain Lewis, 17 June 1805
A fine morning. Wind as usual. Captain Lewis with the party
unloaded the pirogue, and he determined to keep the party employed in
getting the loading to the creek about one mile over a low hill, in my
absence on the portage.
I set out with 5 men at 8 o'clock, and proceeded on up the creek
some distance, to examine that and, if possible ascend that
sufficiently high, that a straight course to the mouth of Medicine
River would head the two ravines. The creek I found confined, rapid,
and shallow, generally passed through an open rolling prairie, so as to
head the two ravines.
After heading two, we steered our course so as to strike the river
below the great pitch. On our course to the river, crossed a deep
ravine near its mouth, with steep cliffs. This ravine had running water
which was very fine. The river at this place is narrow, and confined in
perpendicular cliffs of 170 feet. From the tops of those cliffs, the
country rises with a steep ascent for about 250 feet more.
We proceeded up the river, passing a succession of rapids and
cascades, to the Falls, which we had heard for several miles, making a
deadly sound. I beheld those cataracts with astonishment. The whole of
the water of this great river confined in a channel of 280 yards and
pitching over a rock of 97 feet 3/4 of an inch. From the foot of the
Falls rises a continued mist which is extended for 150 yards down and
to near the top of the cliffs on L. side.
The river below is confined in a narrow channel of 93 yards,
leaving a small bottom of timber on the starboard side which is
defended by a rock, ranging crosswise the river a little below the
chute. A short distance below this cataract a large rock divides the
stream. In descending the cliffs to take the height of the fall, I was
near slipping into the water, at which place I must have been sucked
under in an instant, and with difficulty and great risk I ascended
again, and descended the cliff lower down (but few places can be
descended to the river), and took the height with as much accuracy as
possible, with a spirit level, Dined at a fine spring 200 yards below
the pitch, near which place 4 cotton willow trees grew. On one of them
I marked my name, the date, and height of the falls. We then proceeded
on up the river, passing a continued cascade and rapid to a fall of 19
feet at 4 small islands. This fall is diagonally across the river from
the larboard side, forming an angle of 3/4 of the width for the
larboard, from which side it pitches for 2,/3 of that distance. On the
starboard side is a rapid decline. Below this chute, a deep ravine
falls in, in which we camped for the night, which was cold.
The mountains in every direction have snow on them. The plain to
our left is level. We saw one bear and innumerable numbers of buffalo.
I saw 2 herds of those animals watering immediately above a
considerable rapid. They descended by a narrow pass, the bottom small.
The river forced those forward into the water, some of which were taken
down in an instant, and seen no more. Others made shore with
difficulty. I beheld 40 or 50 of those swimming at the same time. Those
animals in this way are lost, and accounts for the number of buffalo
carcasses below the rapids.
Captain Clark, 17 June 1805
This morning I employed all hands in drawing the pirogue on shore
in a thick bunch of willow bushes some little distance below our camp.
Fastened her securely, drove out the plugs of the gauge holes of her
bottom, and covered her with bushes and driftwood to shelter her from
the sun. I now selected a place for a cache and set three men at work
to complete it and employed all others- except those about the wagons-
in overhauling, airing, and repacking our Indian goods, ammunition,
provision, and stores of every description which required inspection.
Examined the frame of my iron boat and found all the parts complete
except one screw, which the ingenuity of Shields can readily replace- a
resource which we have very frequent occasion for.
About twelve o'clock, the hunters returned. They had killed ten
deer but no elk. I begin to fear that we shall have some difficulty in
procuring skins for the boat. I would prefer those of the elk because I
believe them more durable and strong than those of the buffalo, and
that they will not shrink so much in drying.
We saw a herd of buffalo come down to water at the sulfur spring
this evening. I dispatched some hunters to kill some of them, and a man
also for a cask of mineral water. The hunters soon killed two of them,
in fine order and returned with a good quantity of the flesh, having
left the remainder in a situation that it will not spoil provided the
wolves do not visit it. The wagons are completed this evening, and
appear as if they would answer the purpose very well if the axletrees
prove sufficiently strong. The wind blew violently this evening, as
they frequently do in this open country where there is not a tree to
break or oppose their force.
The Indian woman is recovering fast. She sat up the greater part of
the day, and walked out for the first time since she arrived here. She
eats heartily, and is free from fever or pain. I continue same course
of medicine and regimen except that I added one dose of 15 drops of the
oil of vitriol today, about noon.
Captain Lewis, 18 June 1805
We set out early and arrived at the second great cataract about 200
yards above the last, of 19 feet pitch. This is one of the grandest
views in nature, and by far exceeds anything I ever saw: the Missouri
falling over a shelving rock for 47 feet 8 inches, with a cascade, of
14 feet 7 inches above the chute, for 1/4 mile. I descended the cliff
below this cataract with ease, measured the height of the perpendicular
fall of 47 feet 8 inches, at which place the river is 473 yards wide,
as also the height of the cascade, A continual mist quite across this
fall.
After which, we proceeded on up the river a little more than a mile
to the largest fountain or spring I ever saw, and doubt if it is not
the largest in America known. This water boils up from under the rocks
near the edge of the river and falls immediately into the river eight
feet, and keeps its color for 1/2 a mile, which is immensely clear and
of a bluish cast.
Proceeded on up the river past a succession of rapids to the next
great fall of 26 feet 5 inches, river 580 yards wide. This fall is not
entirely perpendicular. A short bench gives a curve to the water as it
falls. A beautiful small island at the foot of this fall near the
center of the channel, covered with trees.
This evening one man, A. Willard, going for a load of meat at 170
yards distance on an island, was attacked by a white bear, and very
near being caught. Pursued within 40 yards of camp, where I was, with
one man. I collected three others of the party and pursued the bear
(who had pursued my track from a buffalo I had killed on the island at
about 300 yards distance and chanced to meet Willard), for fear of his
attacking one man, Colter, at the lower point of the island. Before we
had got down, the bear had alarmed the man and pursued him into the
water. At our approach he retreated, and we relieved the man in the
water. I saw the bear, but the bushes were so thick that I could not
shoot him and it was nearly dark. The wind from the S.W. and cool.
Killed a beaver and an elk for their skins this evening.
Captain Clark, 18 June 1805
This morning I sent over several men for the meat which was killed
yesterday. A few hours after, they returned with it; the wolves had not
discovered it. I also dispatched George Drouilliard, Reuben Fields, and
George Shannon on the north side of the Missouri with orders to proceed
to the entrance of Medicine River, and endeavor to kill some elk in
that neighborhood. As there is more timber on that river than the
Missouri, I expect that the elk are more plenty. The cache completed
today. The wind blew violently the greater part of the day.
The Indian woman was much better this morning. She walked out and
gathered a considerable quantity of the white apples, of which she ate
so heartily in their raw state, together with a considerable quanity of
dried fish without my knowledge, that she complained very much and her
fever returned. I rebuked Charbonneau severly for suffering her to
indulge herself with such food, he being privy to it and having been
previously told what she must only eat. I now gave her broken doses of
diluted niter until it produced perspiration, and at 10 P.M., 30 drops
of laudanum, which gave her a tolerable nights rest.
Captain Lewis, 19 June 1805
This morning I employed the greater part of the men in transporting
a part of the baggage over Portage Creek to the top of the high plain
about three miles in advance on the portage. I also had one canoe
carried on truck wheels to the same place and put the baggage in it, in
order to make an early start in the morning, as the route of our
portage is not yet entirely settled, and it would be inconvenient to
remain in the open plain all night at a distance from water which would
probably be the case if we did not set out early, as the latter part of
the route is destitute of water for about 8 miles.
Having determined to go to the upper part of the portage tomorrow,
in order to prepare my boat and receive and take care of the stores as
they were transported, I caused the iron frame of the boat and the
necessary tools, my private baggage, and instruments to be taken as a
part of this load; also the baggage of Joseph Fields, Sergeant Gass,
and John Shields, whom I had selected to assist me in constructing the
leather boat.
Three men were employed today in shaving the elk skins which had
been collected for the boat. The balance of the party were employed in
cutting the meat we had killed yesterday into thin flitches and drying
it, and in bringing in the balance of what had been left over the river
with three men last evening. I readily perceive several difficulties in
preparing the leather boat, which are the want of convenient and proper
timber, bark, skins, and above all, that of pitch to pay her seams, a
deficiency that I really know not how to surmount, unless it be by
means of tallow and pounded charcoal, which mixture has answered a very
good purpose on our wooden canoes heretofore.
Captain Lewis, 21 June 1805
This morning early, Captain Clark and myself with all the party
except Sergeant Ordway, Charbonneau, Goodrich, York, and the Indian
woman, set out to pass the portage with the canoe and baggage to the
Whitebear Island where we intend that this portage shall end.
Captain Clark piloted us through the plains. About noon we reached
a little stream about 8 miles on the portage, where we halted and
dined. We were obliged here to renew both axletrees and the tongues and
horns of one set of wheels, which took us no more than 2 hours. These
parts of our carriage had been made of cottonwood and one axletree of
an old mast, all of which proved deficient and had broken down several
times before we reached this place. We have now renewed them with the
sweet willow and hope that they will answer better. After dark, we had
reached within half a mile of our intended camp when the tongues gave
way and we were obliged to leave the canoe. Each man took as much of
the baggage as he could carry on his back and proceeded to the ever,
where we formed our encampment, much fatigued. The prickly pears were
extremely troublesome to us, sticking our feet through our moccasins.
Captain Lewis, 22 June 1805
This morning early, I selected a place for the purpose of
constructing my boat, near the water under some shady willows. Captain
Clark had the canoe and baggage brought up, after which we breakfasted
and nearly consumed the meat which he had left here. He now set out on
his return with the party. I employed the three men with me in the
forenoon clearing away the brush and forming our camp, and putting the
frame of the boat together.
This being done, I sent Shields and Gass to look out for the
necessary timber, and with J. Fields descended the river in the canoe
to the mouth of Medicine River, in search of the hunters whom I had
dispatched thither on the 19th inst. and from whom we had not heard a
sentence. I entered the mouth of Medicine River and ascended it about
half a mile, when we landed and walked up the starboard side,
frequently whooping as we went on in order to find the hunters. At
length, after ascending the river about five miles, we found Shannon,
who had passed the Medicine River and fixed his camp on the larboard
side, where he had killed seven deer and several buffalo, and dried
about 600 pounds of buffalo meat; but had killed no elk.
Shannon could give me no further account of R. Fields and
Drouilliard than that he had left them about noon on the 19th at the
Great Falls and had come on to the mouth of Medicine River to hunt elk
as he had been directed, and never had seen them since. The evening
being now far spent I thought it better to pass the Medicine River and
remain all night at Shannon's camp. I passed the river on a raft which
we soon constructed for the purpose.
Captain Lewis, 23 June 1805
Supposing that Drouilliard and R. Fields might possibly be still
higher up Medicine River, I dispatched J. Fields up the river with
orders to proceed about four miles and then return, whether he found
them or not, and join Shannon at this camp. I set out early and walked
down the southwest side of the river, and sent Shannon down the
opposite side, to bring the canoe over to me and put me across the
Missouri. Having landed on the larboard side of the Missouri, I sent
Shannon back with the canoe to meet J. Fields and bring the dried meat
at that place to the camp at Whitebear Island, which he accomplished,
and arrived with Fields this morning.
The party also arrived this evening with two canoes from the lower
camp. They were wet and fatigued. Gave them a dram. R. Fields came with
them and gave me an account of his and Droullliard's hunt, and informed
me that Drouillard was still at their camp with the meat they had
dried. The iron frame of my boat is 36 feet long, 41/2 feet in the
beam, and 26 inches in the hold.
Captain Lewis, 24 June 1805
This morning early I sent the party back to the lower camp;
dispatched Frazer down with the canoe for Drouilliard and the meat he
had collected, and Joseph Fields up the Missouri to hunt elk. At eight
o'clock, sent Gass and Shields over to the large island for bark and
timber.
About noon Fields returned and informed me that he had seen two
white bear near the river a few miles above and, in attempting to get a
shot at them, had stumbled upon a third, which immediately made at him,
being only a few steps distant; that in running in order to escape from
the bear he had leaped down a steep bank of the river on a stony bar,
where he fell, cut his hand, bruised his knees and bent his gun; that
fortunately for him the bank hid him from the bear when he fell; and
that by that means he had escaped. This man has been truly unfortunate
with these bear. This is the second time that he has narrowly escaped
from them.
The party that returned this evening to the lower camp reached it
in time to take one canoe on the plain and prepare their baggage for an
early start in the morning, after which such as were able to shake a
foot amused themselves in dancing on the green to the music of the
violin, which Cruzat plays extremely well. Captain Clark somewhat
unwell today. He made Charbonneau cook for the party against their
return.
It is worthy of remark that the winds are sometimes so strong in
these plains that the men informed me that they hoisted a sail in the
canoe and it had driven her along on the truck wheels. This is really
sailing on dry land.
Captain Lewis, 25 June 1805
Set Frazer to work to sew the skins together for the covering of
the boat. Shields and Gass I sent over the river to search a small
timbered bottom on that side, opposite to the islands, for timber and
bark. And to myself I assign the duty of cook as well for those present
as for the party which l expect again to arrive this evening from the
lower camp. I collected my wood and water, boiled a large quantity of
excellent dried buffalo meat, and made each man a large suet dumpling
by way of a treat.
About 4 P.M., Shields and Gass returned with a better supply of
timber than they had yet collected, though not by any means enough.
They brought some bark, principally of the cottonwood, which I found
was too brittle and soft for the purpose. For this article, I find my
only dependence is the sweet willow, which has a tough and strong bark.
Shields and Gass had killed seven buffalo in their absence, the
skins of which and a part of the best of the meat they brought with
them. If I cannot procure a sufficient quantity of elk skins, I shall
substitute those of the buffalo. Late in the evening, the party arrived
with two more canoe and another portion of the baggage.
Whitehouse, one of them, much heated and fatigued on his arrival,
drank a very hearty draught of water and was taken almost instantly
extremely ill. His pulse was full, and I therefore bled him
plentifully, from which he felt great relief. I had no other instrument
with which to perform this operation but my penknife; however, it
answered very well. The wind being from S.E. today and favorable, the
men made considerable progress by means of their sails.
At the Lower Camp. The party set out very early from this place,
and took with them two canoes and a second a lotment of baggage,
consisting of parched meal, pork powder, lead, axes, tools, biscuit,
portable soup, some merchandise, and clothing. Captain Clark gave
Sergeant Pryor a dose of salts this morning, and employed Charbonneau
in rendering the buffalo tallow which had been collected there. He
obtained a sufficient quantity to fill three empty kegs.
Captain Clark also selected the articles to be deposited in the
cache, consisting of my desk- which I had left for that purpose and in
which I had left some books, my specimens of plants, minerals,
collected from Fort Mandan to that place- also 2 kegs of pork, 1/2 a
keg of flour, two blunderbusses, 1/2 a keg of fixed ammunition, and
some other small articles belonging to the party which could be
dispensed with. Deposited the swivel and carriage under the rocks, a
tattle above the camp, near the river.
Captain Lewis, 26 June 1805
At 1 P.M. a cloud arose to the southwest, and shortly after came
on, attended with violent thunder, lightning, and hail. Soon after this
storm was over, Drouilliard and J. Fields returned. They were about 4
miles above us during the storm. The hail was of no uncommon size where
they were.
Captain Lewis, 27 June 1805
Set Drouilliard to shaving the elk skins, Fields to make the cross
stays for the boat, Prazer and Whitehouse continue their operation with
the skins, Shields and Gass finish the horizontal bars of the sections,
after which I sent them in search of willow bark, a sufficient supply
of which they now obtained to line the boat.
The white bear have become so troublesome to us that I do not think
it prudent to send one man alone on an errand of any kind, particularly
where he has to pass through the brush. We have seen two of them on the
large island opposite to us today, but are so much engaged that we
could not spare the time to hunt them, but will make a frolic of it
when the party returns, and drive them from these islands. They come
close around our camp every night but have never yet ventured to attack
us, and our dog gives us timely notice of their visits. He keeps
constantly patrolling all night. I have made the men sleep with their
arms by them as usual, for fear of accidents.
Captain Lewis, 28 June 1805
Not having seen the large fountain of which Captain Clark spoke, I
determined to visit it today, as I could better spare this day from my
attention to the boat than probably any other when the work would be
further advanced. Accordingly, after setting the hands at their several
employments, I took Drouilliard and set out for the fountain, and
passed through a level beautiful plain for about six miles, when I
reached the break of the river hills. Here we were overtaken by a
violent gust of wind and rain from the S.W., attended with thunder and
lightning. I expected a hailstorm probably from this cloud and
therefore took refuge in a little gully, where there were some broad
stones with which I purposed protecting my head if we should have a
repetition of the scene of the 27th. But fortunately, we had but little
hail and that not large. I sat very composedly for about an hour
without shelter and took a copious drenching of rain.
After the shower was over I continued my route to the fountain,
which I found much as Captain Clark had described, and think it may
well be retained on the list of prodigies of this neighborhood, toward
which Nature seems to have dealt with a liberal hand, for I have
scarcely experienced a day since my first arrival in this quarter
without experiencing some novel occurrence among the party or
witnessing the appearance of some uncommon object. I think this
fountain the largest I ever beheld, and the handsome cascade which it
affords over some steep and irregular rocks in its passage to the river
adds not a little to its beauty. It is about 25 yards from the river,
situated in a pretty little level plain, and has a sudden descent of
about 6 feet in one part of its course. The water of this fountain is
extremely transparent and cold, nor is it impregnated with lime or any
other extraneous matter which I can discover, but is very pure and
pleasant. Its waters mark their passage, as Captain Clark observes,
for a considerable distance down the Missouri, notwithstanding its
rapidity and force. The water of the fountain boils up with such force
near its center that its surface in that part seems even higher than
the surrounding earth, which is a firm handsome turf of fine green
grass.
Captain Lewis, 29 June 1805
Finding that the prairie was so wet as to render it impossible to
pass on to the end of the portage, determined to send back to the top
of the hill at the creek for the remaining part of the baggage left at
that place yesterday, leaving one man to take care of the baggage at
this place, I determined to proceed on to the falls and take the river.
Accordingly, we all set out. I took my servant and one man. Charbonneau
our interpreter, and his squaw accompanied. Soon after I arrived at the
falls, I perceived a cloud which appeared black and threatened
immediate rain. I looked out for a shelter but could see no place
without being in great danger of being blown into the river if the wind
should prove as turbulent as it is at some times.
About 1/4 of a mile above the falls, I observed a deep ravine in
which were shelving rocks under which we took shelter near the river,
and placed our guns, the compass, under a shelving rock on the upper
side of the creek, in a place which was very secure from rain. The
first shower was moderate, accompanied with a violent wind, the effects
of which we did not feel. Soon after, a torrent of rain and hail fell,
more violent than ever I saw before. The rain fell like one volley of
water falling from the heavens and gave us time only to get out of the
way of a torrent of water which was pouring down the hill into the
river with immense force, tearing everything before it, taking with it
large rocks and mud.
I took my gun and shot pouch in my left hand and with the right
scrambled up the hill, pushing the interpreter's wife- who had her
child in her arms- before me, the interpreter himself making attempts
to pull up his wife by the hand, much scared and nearly without motion.
We at length reached the top of the hill safely, where I found my
servant in search of us, greatly agitated for our welfare. Before I got
out of the bottom of the ravine, which was a flat dry rock when I
entered it, the water was up to my waist and wet my watch. I scarcely
got out before it rose 10 feet deep with a torrent which was terrible
to behold, and by the time I reached the top of the hill, at least 15
feet water. I directed the party to return to the camp, at the run, as
fast as possible to get to our load, where clothes could be got to
cover the child, whose clothes were all lost; and the woman, who was
but just recovering from a severe indisposition and was wet and cold, I
was fearful of a relapse. I caused her, as also the others of the
party, to take a little spirits, which my servant had in a canteen,
which revived them very much. On arrival at the camp on the willow run,
met the party, who had returned in great confusion to the run, leaving
their loads in the plain, the hail and wind being so large and violent
in the plains, and them naked; they were much bruised, and some nearly
killed-one knocked down three times-and others without hats or anything
on their heads, bloody and complained very much. I refreshed them with
a little grog.
Captain Clark, 29 June 1805
I set four men to make new axletrees and repair the carriages,
others to take the load across the river, which had fallen and is about
3 feet water. Men complain of being sore this day, dull and lolling
about. The two men dispatched in search of the articles lost yesterday
returned and brought the compass, which they found in the mud and
stones near the mouth of the ravine. No other articles found. The place
I sheltered under filled up with huge rocks. I set the party out at 11
o'clock to take a load to the 6-mile stake and return this evening, and
I intend to take on the balance to the river tomorrow if the prairie
will permit. At 3 o'clock a storm of wind from the S.W., after which we
had a clear evening. Great numbers of buffalo in every direction. I
think 10,000 may be seen in a view.
Captain Clark, 30 June 1805
This morning I set Frazer and Whitehouse to sewing the leather on
the sides of the sections of the boat, Shields and J. Fields to collect
and split light wood and prepare a pit to make tar. Gass I set to work
to make the way strips out of some willow limbs, which, though
indifferent, were the best which could be obtained. Drouilliard and
myself completed the operation of rendering the tallow. We obtained
about 100 pounds.
By evening the skins were all attached to their sections, and I
returned them again to the water. All matters were now in readiness to
commence the operation of putting the parts of the boat together in the
morning. The way strips are not yet ready but will be done in time, as
I have obtained the necessary timber. The difficulty in obtaining the
necessary materials has retarded my operations in forming this
boat-extremely tedious and troublesome. And as it was a novel piece of
mechanism to all who were employed, my constant attention was necessary
to every part of the work. This, together with the duties of chief
cook, has kept me pretty well employed.
At 3 P.M., Captain Clark arrived with the party, all very much
fatigued. He brought with him all the baggage except what he had
deposited yesterday at the six-mile stake, for which the party were too
much fatigued to return this evening. We gave them a dram, and suffered
them to rest from their labors this evening. I directed Bratton to
assist in making the tar tomorrow, and selected several others to
assist in putting the boat together. The day has been warm and the
mosquitoes troublesome, of course. The bear were about our camp all
last night. We have therefore determined to beat up their quarters
tomorrow, and kill them or drive them from their haunts about this
place.
Captain Lewis, 1 July 1805
After I had completed my observation of equal altitudes today,
Captain Clark, myself, and 12 men passed over to the large islands
to hunt bear. The brush in that part of it where the bear frequent is
an almost impenetrable thicket of the broad-leafed willow. This brush
we entered in small parties of three or four together and searched in
every part. We found only one, which made at Drouilliard, and he shot
him in the breast at the distance of about 20 feet. The ball
fortunately passed through his heart. The stroke knocked the bear down
and gave Drouilliard time to get out of his sight. The bear changed his
course. We pursued him about 100 yards by the blood and found him dead.
We searched the thicket in every part but found no other, and therefore
returned. This was a young male and would weigh about 400 pounds.
Captain Lewis, 2 July 1805
Yesterday we permitted Sergeant Gass, McNeal, and several others
who had not yet seen the Falls to visit them. No appearance of tar yet,
and I am now confident that we shall not be able to obtain any-a
serious misfortune. I employed a number of hands on the boat today, and
by 4 P.M. in the evening completed her except the most difficult part
of the work-that of making her seams secure. I had her turned up and
some small fires kindled underneath to dry her.
Captain Clark completed a draft of the river from Fort Mandan to
this place which we intend depositing at this place in order to guard
against accidents. Not having seen the Snake Indians or knowing in fact
whether to calculate on their friendship or hostility, we have
conceived our party sufficiently small, and therefore have concluded
not to dispatch a canoe with a part of our men to St. Louis as we had
intended early in the spring.
We fear also that such a measure might possibly discourage those
who would in such case remain, and might possibly hazard the fate of
the expedition. We have never once hinted to any one of the party that
we had such a scheme in contemplation, and all appear perfectly to have
made up their minds to succeed in the expedition or perish in the
attempt. We all believe that we are now about to enter on the most
perilous and difficult part of our voyage, yet I see no one repining.
All appear ready to meet those difficulties which await us with
resolution and becoming fortitude.
The mountains to the N.W. and W. of us are still entirely covered,
are white, and glitter with the reflection of the sun. I do not believe
that the clouds which prevail at this season of the year reach the
summits of those lofty mountains, and if they do, the probability is
that they deposit snow only, for there has been no perceptible
diminution of the snow which they contain since we first saw them. I
have thought it probable that these mountains might have derived their
appellation of "Shining Mountains" from their glittering appearance
when the sun shines in certain directions on the snow which covers
them.
Captain Lewis, 4 July 1805
The wind continued violent until late in the evening, by which time
we discovered that a greater part of the composition had separated from
the skins, and left the seams of the boat exposed to the water, and she
leaked in such manner that she would not answer. I need not add that
this circumstance mortified me not a little; and to prevent her leaking
without pitch was impossible with us, and to obtain this article was
equally impossible, therefore the evil was irreparable. I now found
that the section formed of the buffalo hides on which some hair had
been left, answered much the best purpose. This leaked but little, and
the parts which were well covered with hair about l/8 of an inch in
length retained the composition perfectly and remained sound and dry.
From these circumstances I am persuaded that had I formed her with
buffalo skins, singed not quite as close as I had done those I
employed, she would have answered even with this composition. But to
make any further experiments in our present situation seemed to me
madness. The buffalo had principally deserted us, and the season was
now advancing fast. I therefore relinquished all further hope of my
favorite boat, and ordered her to be sunk in the water, that the skins
might become soft in order the better to take her to pieces tomorrow,
and deposited the iron frame at this place as it could probably be of
no further service to us.
Captain Lewis, 9 July 1805
We eat an immensity of meat. It requires 4 deer, an elk and a deer,
or one buffalo, to supply us plentifully 24 hours. Meat now forms our
food principally, as we reserve our flour, parched meal, and corn as
much as possible for the Rocky Mountains, which we are shortly to
enter, and where, from the Indian account, game is not very abundant.
Captain Lewis, 13 July 1805
At 10 A.M., we once more saw ourselves fairly under way much to my
joy, and I believe that of every individual who compose the party. I
walked on shore and killed two elk near one of which the party halted
and dined. We took the skins, marrowbones, and a part of the flesh of
these elk. In order to lighten the burden of the canoes, I continued my
walk all the evening, and took our only invalids, Potts and Lepage,
with me.
Captain Lewis, 15 July 1805
Set out early this morning. Previous to our departure, saw a large
herd of the big-horned animals on the immensely high and nearly
perpendicular cliff opposite to us. On the face of this cliff they
walked about and bounded from rock to rock with apparent unconcern
where it appeared to me that no quadruped could have stood, and from
which, had they made one false step, they must have been precipitated
at least 500 feet. This animal appears to frequent such precipices and
cliffs, where in fact they are perfectly secure from the pursuit of the
wolf, bear, or even man himself.
As we were anxious now to meet with the Shoshones, or Snake
Indians, as soon as possible, in order to obtain information relative
to the geography of the country, and also, if necessary, some horses,
we thought it better for one of us- either Captain Clark or myself- to
take a small party and proceed on up the river some distance, before
the canoes, in order to discover them should they be on the river,
before the daily discharge of our guns, which was necessary in
procuring subsistence for the party, should alarm and cause them to
retreat to the mountains and conceal themselves, supposing us to be
their enemies who visit them usually by way of this river. Accordingly,
Captain Clark set out this morning after breakfast with Joseph
Field, Potts, and his servant York.
Captain Lewis, 18 July 1805
A fine morning. We proceeded on through a valley, leaving the river
about 6 miles to our left, and fell into an Indian road which took us
to the river above the mouth of a creek, 18 miles. The mosquitoes very
troublesome. My man York nearly tired out. The bottoms of my feet
blistered. I observe a smoke rise to our right, up the valley of the
last creek, about 12 miles distant. The cause of this smoke I can't
account for certainly, though think it probable that the Indians have
heard the shooting of the party below, and set the prairies or valley
on fire to alarm their camps, supposing our party to be a war party
coming against them. I left signs to show the Indians if they should
come on our trail that we were not their enemies. Camped on the river.
The feet of the men with me so stuck with prickly pear and cut with
stones that they were scarcely able to march at a slow gait this
afternoon.
Captain Clark, 20 July 1805
Set out early this morning and passed a bad rapid where the river
enters the mountain, about 1 mile from our camp of last evening. The
cliffs high, and covered with fragments of broken rocks. The current
strong. We employed the towrope principally, and also the poles, as the
river is not now so deep but rather wider and much more rapid. Our
progress was therefore slow and laborious. We saw three swans this
morning, which, like the geese, have not yet recovered the feathers of
the wings and could not fly. We killed two of them; the third escaped
by diving and passed down with the current. They had no young ones with
them, therefore presume they do not breed in this country. These are
the first we have seen on the river for a great distance We daily see
great numbers of geese with their young which are perfectly feathered
except the wings, which are deficient in both young and old. My dog
caught several today, as he frequently does.
Captain Lewis, 21 July 1805
The Indian woman recognizes the country and assures us that this is
the river on which her relations live, and that the Three Forks are at
no great distance. This piece of information has cheered the spirits of
the party, who now begin to console themselves with the anticipation of
shortly seeing the head of the Missouri, yet unknown to the civilized
world. The large creek which we passed on starboard, 15 yards, we call
White Earth Creek from the circumstance of the natives procuring a
white paint on this creek.
Captain Lewis, 22 July 1805
I ordered the canoes to hoist their small flags in order that
should the Indians see us, they might discover that we were not
Indians, nor their enemies. We made great use of our setting poles and
cords, the use of both which the river and banks favored. Most of our
small sockets were lost, and the stones were so smooth that the points
of their poles slipped m such manner that it increased the labor of
navigating the canoes very considerably. I recollected a parcel of gigs
which I had brought on, and made the men each attach one of these to
the lower ends of their poles with strong wire, which answered the
desired purpose.
Captain Lewis, 23 July 1805
The valley through which the river passed today is much as that of
yesterday, nor is there any difference in the appearance of the
mountains. They still continue high and seem to rise in some places
like an amphitheater, one range above another, as they recede from the
river, until the most distant and lofty have their tops clad with snow.
The adjacent mountains commonly rise so high as to conceal the more
distant and lofty mountains from our view.
I fear every day that we shall meet with some considerable falls or
obstruction in the river notwithstanding the information of the Indian
woman to the contrary, who assures us that the river continues much as
we see it. I can scarcely form an idea of a river running to great
extent through such a rough, mountainous country without having its
stream intercepted by some difficult and dangerous rapids or falls. We
daily pass a great number of small rapids or riffles, which descend
one, two, or three feet in 150 yards, but we are rarely incommoded with
fixed or standing rocks, and although strong rapid water, they are
nevertheless quite practicable and by no means dangerous.
This morning Captain Clark set out early and pursued the Indian
road, which took him up a creek some miles. About 10 A.M., he
discovered a horse about six miles distant, on his left. He changed his
route toward the horse. On approaching him, he found the horse in fine
order but so wild he could not get within less than several hundred
paces of him. He still saw much Indian sign, but none of recent date.
From this horse he directed his course obliquely to the river, where,
on his arrival, he killed a deer and dined.
Captain Lewis, 24 July 1805
A fine morning. We proceeded on a few miles to the Three Forks of
the Missouri. Those three forks are nearly of a size. The north fork
appears to have the most water and must be considered as the one best
calculated for us to ascend. Middle fork is quite as large- about 90
yards wide. The south fork is about 70 yards wide, and falls in about
400 yards below the middle fork. Those forks appear to be very rapid,
and contain some timber in their bottoms which are very extensive.
On the north side the Indians have latterly set the prairies on
fire- the cause I can't account for. I saw one horsetrack going up the
river, about four or 5 days past.
After breakfast- which we made on the ribs of a buck killed
yesterday- I wrote a note informing Captain Lewis the route I intended
to take, and proceeded on up the main north fork through a valley, the
day very hot.
About 6 or 8 miles up the north fork, a small rapid river falls in
on the larboard side, which affords a great deal of water, and appears
to head in the snow mountains to the S.W. This little river falls into
the Missouri by three mouths, having separated after it arrives in the
river bottoms, and contains, as also all the water courses in this
quarter, immense numbers of beaver and otter. Many thousand inhabit the
river and creeks near the Three Forks (Philosopher's River) . We camped
on the same side. We ascended starboard 20 miles on a direct line up
the N. fork. Charbonneau, our interpreter, nearly tired out; one of his
ankles failing him. The bottoms are extensive and tolerable land
covered with tall grass and prickly pears. The hills and mountains are
high, steep, and rocky. The river very much divided by islands.
Captain Clark, 25 July 1805
The high lands are thin, meager soil, covered with dry, low sedge
and a species of grass, also dry, the seeds of which are armed with a
long, twisted, hard beard at the upper extremity, while the lower point
is a sharp, subulate, firm point beset at its base with little stiff
bristles standing with their points in a contrary direction to the
subulate point, to which they answer as a barb and serve also to press
it forward when once entered a small distance. These barbed seeds
penetrate our moccasins and leather leggings and give us great pain
until they are removed. My poor dog suffers with them excessively. He
is constantly biting and scratching himself as if in a rack of pain.
The prickly pear also grow here as abundantly as usual. There is
another species of the prickly pear of a globular form, composed of an
assemblage of little conic leaves springing from a common root, to
which their small points are attached as a common center; and the base
of the cone forms the apex of the leaf, which is garnished with a
circular range of sharp thorns, quite as stiff and more keen than the
more common species with the flat leaf, like the cochineal plant.
On entering this open valley, I saw the snow-clad tops of distant
mountains before us. The timber and mountains much as heretofore. Saw a
number of beaver today and some otter; killed one of the former, also
four deer. Found a deer's skin which had been left by
Captain Clark, with a note informing me of his having met with a
horse, but had seen no fresh appearance of the Indians.
I determined to leave Charbonneau and one man who had sore feet to
rest, and proceed on with the other two to the top of a mountain 12
miles distant, west, and from thence view the river and valleys ahead.
We, with great difficulty and much fatigue, reached the top at 11
o'clock. From the top of this mountain I could see the course of the
north fork about ten miles, meandering through a valley, but could
discover no Indians or sign which was fresh. I could also see some
distance up the small river below, and also the middle fork. After
satisfying myself, returned to the two men by an old Indian path.
On this path, and in the mountain, we came to a spring of excessive
cold water, which we drank rather freely of, as we were almost
famished. Notwithstanding the precautions of wetting my face, hands,
and feet, I soon felt the effects of the water. We continued through a
deep valley without a tree to shade us, scorching with heat, to the men
who had killed a poor deer. I was fatigued. My feet with several
blisters, and stuck with prickly pears.
Captain Clark, 26 July 1805
Ascended the S.W. fork 1 3/4 miles and encamped at a larboard bend
in a handsome, level, smooth plain just below a bayou, having passed
the entrance of the middle fork at 1/2 a mile. Here I encamped to wait
the return of Captain Clark, and to give the men a little rest, which
seemed absolutely necessary to them. At the junction of the S.W. and
middle forks, I found a note which had been left by Captain Clark
informing me of his intended route, and that he would join me at this
place, provided he did not fall in with any fresh sign of Indians, in
which case he intended to pursue until he overtook them, calculating on
my taking the S.W. fork, which I most certainly prefer, as its
direction is much more promising than any other.
Believing this to be an essential point in the geography of this
western part of the continent, I determined to remain at all events
until I obtained the necessary data for fixing its latitude, longitude,
After fixing my camp, I had the canoes all unloaded and the baggage
stowed away and securely covered on shore, and then permitted several
men to hunt.
I walked down to the middle fork and examined and compared it with
the S.W. fork, but could not satisfy myself which was the largest
stream of the two; in fact they appeared as if they had been cast in
the same mold, there being no difference in character or size.
Therefore, to call either of these streams the Missouri would be giving
it a preference which its size does not warrant, as it is not larger
than the other. They are each 90 yards wide. In these meadows I saw a
number of the mallard duck with their young, which are now nearly
grown.
Captain Clark arrived very sick, with a high fever on him, and much
fatigued and exhausted. He informed me that he was very sick all last
night, had a high fever and frequent chills and constant aching pains
in all his muscles. This morning, notwithstanding his indisposition, he
pursued his intended route to the middle fork, about 8 miles, and
finding no recent sign of Indians, rested about an hour, and came down
the middle fork to this place.
Captain Clark thought himself somewhat bilious and had not had a
passage for several days. I prevailed on him to take a dose of Rush's
pills, which I have always found sovereign in such cases, and to bathe
his feet in warm water and rest himself. Captain Clark's indisposition
was a further inducement for my remaining here a couple of days. I
therefore informed the men of my intention, and they put their deer
skins in the water in order to prepare them for dressing tomorrow.
We begin to feel considerable anxiety with respect to the Snake
Indians. If we do not find them or some other nation who have horses, I
fear the successful issue of our voyage will be very doubtful, or at
all events much more difficult in its accomplishment. We are now
several hundred miles within the bosom of this wild and mountainous
country, where game may rationally be expected shortly to become scarce
and subsistence precarious without any information with respect to the
country, not knowing how far these mountains continue, or where to
direct our course to pass them to advantage or intercept a navigable
branch of the Columbia; or even were we on such an one, the probability
is that we should not find any timber within these mountains large
enough for canoes, if we judge from the portion of them through which
we have passed.
However, I still hope for the best, and intend taking a tramp
myself in a few days to find these yellow 2 gentlemen if possible. My
two principal consolations are that from our present position it is
impossible that the S.W. fork can head with the waters of any other
river but the Columbia, and that if any Indians can subsist in the form
of a nation in these mountains with the means they have of acquiring
food, we can also subsist.
Captain Lewis, 27 July 1805
My friend Captain Clark was very sick all last night but feels
himself somewhat better this morning, since his medicine has operated.
I dispatched two men early this morning up the S.E. fork to examine the
river, and permitted sundry others to hunt in the neighborhood of this
place. Both Captain Clark and myself corresponded in opinion with
respect to the impropriety of calling either of these streams the
Missouri, and accordingly agreed to name them after the President of
the United States and the Secretaries of the Treasury and State, having
previously named one river in honor of the Secretaries of War and Navy.
In pursuance of this resolution, we called the S.W. fork- that
which we meant to ascend- Jefferson's River, in honor of that
illustrious personage, Thomas Jefferson [the author of our enterprise].
The middle fork we called Madison's River, in honor of James Madison;
and the S.E. fork we called Gallatin's River, in honor of Albert
Gallatin. The two first are 90 yards wide, and the last is 70 yards.
All of them run with great velocity and throw out large bodies of
water. Gallatin's River is rather more rapid than either of the others,
is not quite as deep, but from all appearances may be navigated to a
considerable distance.
Captain Clark, who came down Madison's River yesterday and has also
seen Jefferson's some distance, thinks Madison's rather the most rapid,
but it is not as much so, by any means, as Gallatin's. The beds of all
these streams are formed of smooth pebble and gravel, and their waters
perfectly transparent; in short, they are three noble streams.
Our present camp is precisely on the spot that the Snake Indians
were encamped at the time the Minnetarees of the Knife River first came
in sight of them five years since. From hence they retreated about
three miles up Jefferson's River and concealed themselves in the woods.
The Minnetarees pursued, attacked them, killed four men, four women, a
number of boys, and made prisoners of all the females and four boys.
Sacagawea, our Indian woman, was one of the female prisoners taken at
that time, though I cannot discover that she shows any emotion of
sorrow in recollecting this event, or of joy in being again restored to
her native country. If she has enough to eat and a few trinkets to
wear, I believe she would be perfectly content anywhere.
Captain Lewis, 28 July 1805
Captain Clark set out this morning as usual. He walked on shore a
small distance this morning and killed a deer. In the course of his
walk he saw a track which he supposed to be that of an Indian from the
circumstance of the large toes turning inward. He pursued the track and
found that the person had ascended a point of a hill from which his
camp of the last evening was visible. This circumstance also confirmed
the belief of its being an Indian who had thus discovered them, and ran
off.
Captain Lewis, 3 August 1805
We set out this morning very early on our return to the Forks.
Having nothing to eat, I sent Drouilliard to the wood-lands to my left
in order to kit a deer; sent Sergeant Gass to the right with orders to
keep sufficiently near to discover Captain Clark and the party should
they be on their way up that stream; and, with Charbonneau, I directed
my course to the main Forks through the bottom, directing the others to
meet us there.
About five miles above the Forks, I heard the whooping of the party
to my left and changed my route toward them. On my arrival, found that
they had taken the rapid fork and learned from Captain Clark that he
had not found the note which I had left for him at that place and the
reasons which had induced him to ascend this stream. It was easiest and
more in our direction, and appeared to contain as much water. He had,
however, previously to my coming up with him, met Drouilliard, who
informed him of the state of the two rivers and was on his return.
One of their canoes had just overset and all the baggage wet- the
medicine box, among other articles- and several articles lost, a shot
pouch and horn with all the implements for one rifle lost and never
recovered. I walked down to the point where I waited their return.
On their arrival, found that two other canoes had filled with water
and wet their cargoes completely. Whitehouse had been thrown out of one
of the canoes as she swung in a rapid current, and the canoe had rubbed
him and pressed him to the bottom as she passed over him, and had the
water been two inches shallower must inevitably have crushed him to
death. Our parched meal, corn, Indian presents, and a great part of our
most valuable stores were wet and much damaged on this occasion. To
examine, dry, and arrange our stores was the first object. We therefore
passed over to the larboard side, opposite to the entrance of the rapid
fork, where there was a large gravelly bar that answered our purposes.
Wood was also convenient and plenty. Here we fixed our camp and
unloaded all our canoes, and opened, and exposed to dry, such articles
as had been wet.
A part of the load of each canoe consisted of the leaden canisters
of powder, which were not in the least injured though some of them had
remained upwards of an hour under water. About 20 pounds of powder
which we had in a tight keg, or at least one which we thought
sufficiently so, got wet and entirely spoiled. This would have been the
case with the other had it not been for the expedient which I had
fallen on of securing the powder by means of the lead, having the
latter formed into canisters which were filled with the necessary
proportion of powder to discharge the lead when used, and those
canisters well secured with corks and wax.
Shannon had been dispatched up the rapid fork this morning to hunt
by Captain Clark before he met with Drouilliard or learned his mistake
in the rivers. When he returned, he sent Drouilliard in search of him,
but he rejoined us this evening and reported that he had been several
miles up the river and could find nothing of him. We had the trumpet
sounded and fired several guns, but he did not join us this evening. I
am fearful he is lost again. This is the same man who was separated
from us fifteen days as we came up the Missouri, and subsisted nine
days of that time on grapes only.
Whitehouse is in much pain this evening with the injury one of his
legs sustained from the canoe today, at the time it upset and swung
over him. Captain Clark's ankle is also very painful to him. We should
have given the party a day's rest somewhere near this place had not
this accident happened, as I had determined to take some observations
to fix the latitude and longitude of these forks. Our merchandise,
medicine, are not sufficiently dry this evening. We covered them
securely for the evening. Captain Clark had ascended the river about
nine miles from this place on course of S 30¡ W before he met with
Drouilliard.
We believe that the N.W. or rapid fork is the drain of the melting
snows of the mountains, and that it is not as long as the middle fork,
and does not at all seasons of the year supply anything like as much
water as the other, and that about this season it rises to its greatest
height. This last appears from the apparent bed of the river, which is
now overflowed, and the water in many places spreads through old
channels which have their bottoms covered with grass that has grown
this season, and is such as appears on the parts of the bottom not
inundated. We therefore determined that the middle fork was that which
ought of right to bear the name we had given to the lower portion, or
River Jefferson; and called the bold, rapid, and clear stream Wisdom;
and the more mild and placid one which flows in from the S.E.
Philanthropy, in commemoration of two of those cardinal virtues which
have so eminently marked that deservedly celebrated character through
life.
Captain Lewis, 6 August 1805
At one o'clock all our baggage was dry. We therefore packed it up,
reloaded the canoes, and the party proceeded with Captain Clark up
Jefferson's River. I remained with Sergeant Gass to complete the
observation of equal altitudes and joined them in the evening at their
camp. We have not heard anything from Shannon yet; we expect that he
has pursued Wisdom River upwards for some distance, probably killed
some heavy animal, and is awaiting our arrival. The large biting fly,
or hare fly as they are sometimes called, are very troublesome to us. I
observe two kinds of them- a large black species, and a small brown
species with a green head.
Captain Lewis, 7 August 1805
The Indian woman recognized the point of a high plain to our right,
which, she informed us, was not very distant from the summer retreat of
her nation, on a river beyond the mountains which runs to the west.
This hill, she says, her nation calls the Beaver's Head, from a
conceived resemblance of its figure to the head of that animal. She
assures us that we shall either find her people on this river, or on
the river immediately west of its source, which, from its present size,
cannot be very distant.
As it is now all-important with us to meet with those people as
soon as possible, I determined to proceed tomorrow with a small party
to the source of the principal stream of this river and pass the
mountains to the Columbia, and down that river until I found the
Indians. In short, it is my resolution to find them or some others who
have horses, if it should cause me a trip of one month. For, without
horses we shall be obliged to leave a great part of our stores, of
which it appears to me that we have a stock already sufficiently small
for the length of the voyage before us.
Captain Lewis, 8 August 1805
The morning was fair and fine; we set out at an early hour and
proceeded on very well. I walked on shore across the land to a point
which I presumed they would reach by 8 A.M., our usual time of halting.
The party did not arrive, and I returned about a mile and met them.
Here they halted and we breakfasted. While we halted here, Shannon
arrived and informed us that, having missed the party the day on which
he set out, he had returned the next morning to the place from whence
he had set out and, not finding them, that he had supposed that they
were above him; that he had then marched one day up Wisdom River, by
which time he was convinced that they were not above him, as the river
could not be navigated; he had then returned to the Forks and pursued
us up this river. He had lived very plentifully this trip, but looked a
good deal worried with his march.
Captain Lewis, 9 August 1805
We set out very early this morning, but the track which we had
pursued last evening soon disappeared. I therefore resolved to proceed
to the narrow pass on the creek, about 10 miles west, in hopes that I
should again find the Indian road at that place. Accordingly, I passed
the river, which was about 12 yards wide and barred in several places
entirely across by beaver dams, and proceeded through the level plain
directly to the pass. I now sent Drouilliard to keep near the creek to
my right and Shields to my left, with orders to search for the road,
which if they found, they were to notify me by placing a hat on the
muzzle of their gun. I kept McNeal with me.
After having marched in this order for about five miles, I
discovered an Indian on horseback about two miles distant, coming down
the plain toward us. With my glass, I discovered from his dress that he
was of a different nation from any that we had yet seen, and was
satisfied of his being a Shoshone. His arms were a bow and quiver of
arrows, and he was mounted on an elegant horse without a saddle, and a
small string which was attached to the under jaw of the horse which
answered as a bridle. I was overjoyed at the sight of this stranger,
and had no doubt of obtaining a friendly introduction to his nation,
provided I could get near enough to him to convince him of our being
white men. I therefore proceeded toward him at my usual pace.
When I had arrived within about a mile, he made a halt, which I did
also; and unloosing my blanket from my pack, I made him the signal of
friendship known to the Indians of the Rocky Mountains and those of the
Missouri - which is, by holding the mantle or robe in your hands at two
corners and then throwing it up in the air higher than the head,
bringing it to the earth as if in the act of spreading it, thus
repeating three times. This signal of the robe has arisen from a custom
among all those nations of spreading a robe or skin for their guests to
sit on when they are visited.
This signal had not the desired effect. He still kept his position,
and seemed to view Drouilliard and Shields, who were now coming in
sight on either hand, with an air of suspicion. I would willingly have
made them halt, but they were too far distant to hear me, and I feared
to make any signal to them lest it should increase the suspicion in the
mind of the Indian of our having some unfriendly design upon him.
I therefore hastened to take out of my sack some beads a looking
glass, and a few trinkets, which I had brought with me for this purpose
and, leaving my gun and pouch with McNeal, advanced unarmed toward him.
He remained in the same steadfast posture until I arrived in about 200
paces of him, when he turned his horse about and began to move off
slowly from me.
I now called to him in as loud a voice as I could command,
repeating the word "tab-ba-bone," which, in their language, signifies
"white man." But, looking over his shoulder, he still kept his eye on
Drouilliard and Shields, who were still advancing, neither of them
having sagacity enough to recollect the impropriety of advancing when
they saw me thus in parley with the Indian. I now made a signal to
these men to halt. Drouilliard obeyed; but Shields, who afterward told
me that he did not observe the signal, still kept on.
The Indian halted again, and turned his horse about as if to wait
for me, and I believe he would have remained until I came up with him
had it not been for Shields, who still pressed forward. When I arrived
within about 150 paces, I again repeated the word, "tab-ba-bone," and
held up the trinkets in my hands, and stripped up my shirt sleeve to
give him an opportunity of seeing the color of my skin, and advanced
leisurely toward him. But he did not remain until I got nearer than
about 100 paces, when he suddenly turned his horse about, gave him the
whip, leaped the creek, and disappeared in the willow brush in an
instant; and with him vanished all my hopes of obtaining horses for the
present.
I now felt quite as much mortification and disappointment as I had
pleasure and expectation at the first sight of this Indian. I felt
sorely chagrined at the conduct of the men, particularly Shields, to
whom I principally attributed this failure in obtaining an introduction
to the natives. I now called the men to me and could not forbear
upbraiding them a little for their want of attention, and imprudence,
on this occasion.
We now set out on the track of the horse, hoping, by that means, to
be led to an Indian camp, the trail of inhabitants of which- should
they abscond- we should probably be enabled to pursue to the body of
the nation, to which they would most probably fly for safety. This
route led us across a large island framed by nearly an equal division
of the creek in this bottom. After passing to the open ground on the N.
side of the creek, we observed that the track made out toward the high
hills about 3 miles distant in that direction.
I thought it probable that their camp might probably be among those
hills and that they would reconnoiter us from the tops of them, and
that if we advanced hastily toward them that they would become alarmed
and probably run off. I therefore halted in an elevated situation near
the creek, had a fire kindled of willow brush, cooked and took
breakfast. During this leisure, I prepared a small assortment of
trinkets consisting of some moccasin awls, a few strands of several
kinds of beads, some paint, a looking glass, which I attached to the
end of a pole and planted it near our fire in order that, should the
Indians return in search of us, they might from this token discover
that we were friendly, and white persons. Before we had finished our
meal a heavy shower of rain came on with some hail, which continued
about 20 minutes and wet us to the skin.
After this shower we pursued the track of the horse, but as the
rain had raised the grass which he had trodden down it was with
difficulty that we could follow it. We pursued it, however, about 4
miles- it turning up the valley to the left under the foot of the
hills. We passed several places where the Indians appeared to have been
digging roots today, and saw the fresh tracks of 8 or ten horses, but
they had been wandering about in such a confused manner that we not
only lost track of the horse which we had been pursuing but could make
nothing of them. In the head of this valley we passed a large bog
covered with tall grass and moss in which were a great number of
springs of cold pure water. We now turned a little to the left along
the foot of the high hills and arrived at a small branch on which we
encamped for the night, having traveled in different directions about
20 miles and about 10 from the camp of last evening on a direct line.
After meeting with the Indian today, I fixed a small flag of the U.S.
to a pole which I made McNeal carry, and planted in the ground where we
halted or encamped.
This morning I sent Drouilliard out as soon as it was light, to try
and discover what route the Indians had taken. He followed the track of
the horse we had pursued yesterday to the mountain where it had
ascended, and returned to me in about an hour and a half.
I now determined to pursue the base of the mountains which form
this cove to the S.W. in the expectation of finding some Indian road
which leads over the mountains. Accordingly, I sent Drouilliard to my
right and Shields to my left with orders to look out for a road, or the
fresh tracks of horses, either of which we should first meet with, I
had determined to pursue. At the distance of about 4 miles, we passed 4
small rivulets near each other on which we saw some recent bowers or
small conic lodges formed with willow brush. Near them the Indians had
gathered a number of roots, from the manner in which they had torn up
the ground.
Near this place, we fell in with a large and plain Indian road,
which came into the cove from the northeast and led along the foot of
the mountains to the southwest, obliquely approaching the main stream,
which we had left yesterday. This road we now pursued to the southwest.
At 5 miles it passed a stout stream which is a principal fork of the
main stream and falls into it just above the narrow pass between the
two cliffs before mentioned, which we now saw below us. Here we halted
and breakfasted on the last of our venison, having yet a small piece of
pork in reserve. After eating, we continued our route through the low
bottom of the main stream along the foot of the mountains on our right.
The valley for 5 miles farther in a southwest direction was from 2 to 3
miles wide.
At the distance of 4 miles further, the road took us to the most
distant fountain of the waters of the mighty Missouri in search of
which we have spent so many toilsome days and restless nights. Thus far
I had accomplished one of those great objects on which my mind has been
unalterably fixed for many years. Judge, then, of the pleasure I felt
in allaying my thirst with this pure and ice-cold water which issues
from the base of a low mountain or hill of a gentle ascent for l/2 a
mile. The mountains are high on either hand, leave this gap at the head
of this rivulet through which the road passes. Here I halted a few
minutes and rested myself. Two miles below, McNeal had exultingly stood
with a foot on each side of this little rivulet and thanked his God
that he had lived to bestride the mighty, and heretofore deemed
endless, Missouri.
After refreshing ourselves, we proceeded on to the top of the
dividing ridge, from which I discovered immense ranges of high
mountains still to the west of us, with their tops partially covered
with snow. I now descended the mountain about 3/4 of a mile, which I
found much steeper than on the opposite side, to a handsome bold
running creek of cold, clear water. Here I first tasted the water of
the great Columbia River.
After a short halt of a few minutes, we continued our march along
the Indian road which led us over steep hills and deep hollows to a
spring on the side of a mountain where we found a sufficient quantity
of dry willow brush for fuel. Here we encamped for the night. As we had
killed nothing during the day, we now boiled and ate the remainder of
our pork, having yet a little flour and parched meal. At the creek on
this side of the mountain I observed a species of deep purple currant,
lower in its growth the stem more branched, and leaf doubly as large as
that of the Missouri. The leaf is covered on its under disk with a
hairy pubescence. The fruit is of the ordinary size and shape of the
currant and is supported in the usual manner, but is acid and very
inferior in point of flavor.
This morning Captain Clark set out early. Found the river shoaly,
rapid, shallow, and extremely difficult. The men in the water almost
all day. They are getting weak, sore, and much fatigued. They
complained of the fatigue to which the navigation subjected them and
wished to go by land. Captain Clark encouraged them and pacified them.
One of the canoes was very near oversetting in a rapid today. They
proceeded but slowly.
Captain Lewis, 12 August 1805
We had proceeded about four miles through a wavy plain parallel to
the valley or river bottom when, at the distance of about a mile, we
saw two women, a man, and some dogs on an eminence immediately before
us. They appeared to view us with attention, and two of them, after a
few minutes, sat down as if to wait our arrival. We continued our usual
pace toward them. When we had arrived within half a mile of them, I
directed the party to halt, and leaving my pack and rifle, I took the
flag, which I unfurled, and advanced singly toward them. The women soon
disappeared behind the hill. The man continued until I arrived within a
hundred yards of him and then likewise, absconded, though I frequently
repeated the word "tab-ba-bone" sufficiently loud for him to have heard
it.
I now hastened to the top of the hill where they had stood but
could see nothing of them. The dogs were less shy than their masters;
they came about me pretty close. I therefore thought of tying a
handkerchief about one of their necks, with some beads and other
trinkets, and then let them loose to search their fugitive owners,
thinking by this means to convince them of our pacific disposition
toward them. But the dogs would not suffer me to take hold of them.
They also soon disappeared.
I now made a signal for the men to come on. They joined me and we
pursued the back track of these Indians, which led us along the same
road which we had been traveling. The road was dusty and appeared to
have been much traveled lately both by men and horses. We had not
continued our route more than a mile when we were so fortunate as to
meet with three female savages. The short and steep ravines which we
passed concealed us from each other until we arrived within 30 paces. A
young woman immediately took to flight. An elderly woman and a girl of
about 12 years old remained. I instantly laid by my gun and advanced
toward them. They appeared much alarmed but saw that we were too near
for them to escape by flight. They therefore seated themselves on the
ground, holding down their heads as if reconciled to die, which they
expected no doubt would be their fate.
I took the elderly woman by the hand and raised her up, repeated
the word "tab-ba-bone," and stripped up my shirt sleeve to show her my
skin to prove to her the truth of the assertion that I was a white man,
for my face and hands, which have been constantly exposed to the sun,
were quite as dark as their own. They appeared instantly reconciled;
and the men coming up, I gave these women some beads, a few moccasin
awls, some pewter looking glasses, and a little paint. I directed
Drouilliard to request the old woman to recall the young woman, who had
run off to some distance by this time, fearing she might alarm the camp
before we approached and might so exasperate the natives that they
would perhaps attack us without inquiring who we were.
The old woman did as she was requested, and the fugitive soon
returned, almost out of breath. I bestowed an equivalent portion of
trinkets on her with the others. I now painted their tawny cheeks with
some vermilion, which, with this nation, is emblematic of peace. After
they had become composed, I informed them by signs that I wished them
to conduct us to their camp; that we were anxious to become acquainted
with the chiefs and warriors of their nation. They readily obeyed, and
we set out, still pursuing the road down the river.
We had marched about 2 miles when we met a party of about 60
warriors, mounted on excellent horses, who came in nearly full speed.
When they arrived, I advanced toward them with the flag, leaving my gun
with the party about 50 paces behind me. The chief and two others, who
were a little in advance of the main body, spoke to the women, and they
informed them who we were and exultingly showed the presents which had
been given them. These men then advanced and embraced me very
affectionately in their way, which is by putting their left arm over
your right shoulder, clasping your back, while they apply their left
cheek to yours, and frequently vociferate the word "‰h-h'-e,
‰h-h'-e"-that is, "I am much pleased; I am much rejoiced." Both parties
now advanced, and we were all caressed and besmeared with their grease
and paint until I was heartily tired of the national hug.
I now had the pipe lit and gave them smoke. They seated themselves
in a circle around us and pulled off their moccasins, before they would
receive or smoke the pipe. This is a custom among them, as I afterward
learned, indicative of a sacred obligation of sincerity in their
profession of friendship, given by the act of receiving and smoking the
pipe of a stranger; which is as much as to say, that they wish they may
always go barefoot if they are not sincere- a pretty heavy penalty, if
they are to march through the plains of their country! After smoking a
few pipes with them, I distributed some trifles among them with which
they seemed much pleased, particularly with the blue beads and
vermilion.
I now informed the chief that the object of our visit was a
friendly one, that after we would reach his camp I would undertake to
explain to him fully those objects-who we were, from whence we had
come, and whither we were going; that, in the meantime, I did not care
how soon we were in motion, as the sun was very warm and no water at
hand. They now put on their moccasins, and the principal chief,
Came‰hwait, made a short speech to the warriors. I gave him the flag
which, I informed him, was an emblem of peace among white men, and now
that it had been received by him it was to be respected as the bond of
union between us. I desired him to march on, which he did, and we
followed him. The dragoons moved on in squadron in our rear.
After we had marched about a mile in this order, he halted them and
gave a second harangue, after which six or eight of the young men rode
forward to their encampment, and no further regularity was observed in
the order of march.
I afterwards understood that the Indians we had first seen this
morning had returned and alarmed the camp. These men had come out armed
cap ˆ pie for action, expecting to meet with their enemies, the
Minnetarees of Fort de Prairie, whom they call Pahkees. They were armed
with bows, arrows, and shields, except three whom I observed with small
pieces such as the North-West Company furnish the natives with, which
they had obtained from the Rocky Mountain Indians on the Yellowstone
River, with whom they are at peace.
On our arrival at their encampment on the river in a handsome level
and fertile bottom, at the distance of 4 miles from where we had first
met them, they introduced us to a lodge made of willow brush and an old
leather lodge, which had been prepared for our reception by the young
men which the chief had dispatched for that purpose. Here we were
seated on green boughs and the skins of antelopes. One of the warriors
then pulled up the grass in the center of the lodge, forming a small
circle about 2 feet in diameter.
The chief next produced his pipe and native tobacco and began a
long ceremony of the pipe, when we were requested to take off our
moccasins, the chief having previously taken off his, as well as all
the warriors present. This we complied with. The chief then lit his
pipe at the fire, kindled in this little magic circle, and, standing on
the opposite side of the circle, uttered a speech of several minutes in
length, at the conclusion of which he pointed the stem to the four
cardinal points of the heavens, first beginning at the east and ending
with the north. He now presented the pipe to me as if desirous that I
should smoke, but when I reached my hand to receive it, he drew it back
and repeated the same ceremony three times, after which he pointed the
stem first to the heavens, then to the center of the magic circle,
smoked himself with three whiffs, and held the pipe until I took as
many as I thought proper. He then held it to each of the white persons
and then gave it to be consumed by his warriors.
This pipe was made of a dense semitransparent green stone, very
highly polished, about 21/2 inches long and of an oval figure, the bowl
being in the same direction with the stem. A small piece of burned clay
is placed in the bottom of the bowl to separate the tobacco from the
end of the stem and is of an irregularly rounded figure not fitting the
tube perfectly close in order that the smoke may pass. This is the form
of the pipe. Their tobacco is of the same kind as that used by the
Minnetarees, Mandans, and Arikaras of the Missouri. The Shoshones do
not cultivate this plant, but obtain it from the Rocky Mountain Indians
and some of the bands of their own nation who live further south. I now
explained to them the objects of our journey,
All the women and children of the camp were shortly collected about
the lodge to indulge themselves with looking at us, we being the first
white persons they had ever seen. After the ceremony of the pipe was
over, I distributed the remainder of the small articles I had brought
with me, among the women and children. By this time it was late in the
evening and we had not tasted any food since the evening before. The
chief informed us that they had nothing but berries to eat and gave us
some cakes of serviceberries and chokecherries which had been dried in
the sun. Of these I made a hearty meal and then walked to the river,
which I found about 40 yards wide, very rapid, clear, and about 3 feet
deep. The banks low and abrupt as those of the upper part of the
Missouri, and the bed formed of loose stones and gravel. Came‰hwait
informed me that this stream discharged itself into another doubly as
large, at the distance of half a day's march, which came from the S.W.
But, he added on further inquiry, that there was but little more timber
below the junction of those rivers than I saw here, and that the river
was confined between inaccessible mountains, was very rapid and rocky
insomuch that it was impossible for us to pass either by land or water
down this river to the great lake where the white men lived, as he had
been informed. This was unwelcome information but I still hoped that
this account had been exaggerated with a view to detain us among them.
As to timber, I could discover not any that would answer the purpose of
constructing canoes, or, in short, more than was barely necessary for
fuel.
On my return to my lodge, an Indian called me into his bower and
gave me a small morsel of the flesh of an antelope, boiled, and a piece
of a fresh salmon roasted, both of which I ate with a very good relish.
This was the first salmon I had seen, and perfectly convinced me that
we were on the waters of the Pacific Ocean. The course of this river is
a little to the north of west as far as I can discover it, and is
bounded on each side by a range of high mountains, though those on the
east side are lowest and more distant from the river.
This evening, the Indians entertained us with their dancing nearly
all night. At 12 o'clock l grew sleepy and retired to rest, leaving the
men to amuse themselves with the Indians. I observe no essential
difference between the music and manner of dancing among this nation
and those of the Missouri. I was several times awakened in the course
of the night by their yells, but was too much fatigued to be deprived
of a tolerable sound night's repose.
The game which they principally hunt is the antelope, which they
pursue on horseback and shoot with their arrows. This animal is so
extremely fleet and durable that a single horse has no possible chance
to overtake them or run them down. The Indians are therefore obliged to
have recourse to stratagem when they discover a herd of the antelope.
They separate and scatter themselves to the distance of five or six
miles in different directions around them, generally selecting some
commanding eminence for a stand. Some one, or two, now pursue the herd
at full speed over the hills, valleys, gullies, and the sides of
precipices that are tremendous to view. Thus, after running them from
five to six or seven miles, the fresh horses that were in waiting head
them [off] and drive them back, pursuing them as far or perhaps further
quite to the other extreme of the hunters, who now in turn pursue on
their fresh horses, thus worrying the poor animal down and finally
killing them with their arrows. Forty or fifty hunters will be engaged
for half a day in this manner and perhaps not kill more than two or
three antelopes.
They have but few elk or black-tailed deer, and the common red deer
they cannot take as they secrete themselves in the brush when pursued,
and they have only the bow and arrow, which is a very slender
dependence for killing any game except such as they can run down with
their horses. I was very much entertained with a view of this Indian
chase. It was after a herd of about 10 antelope, and about 20 hunters.
It lasted about 2 hours, and a considerable part of the chase in view
from my tent. About 1 A.M., the hunters returned, had not killed a
single antelope, and their horses foaming with sweat. My hunters
returned soon after and had been equally unsuccessful. I now directed
McNeal to make me a little paste with the flour and added some berries
to it, which I found very palatable.
The means I had of communicating with these people was by way of
Drouilliard, who understood perfectly the common language of
gesticulation, or signs, which seems to be universally understood by
all the nations we have yet seen. It is true that this language is
imperfect and liable to error, but it is much less so than would be
expected. The strong parts of the ideas are seldom mistaken.
I now prevailed on the chief to instruct me with respect to the
geography of his country. This he undertook very cheerfully by
delineating the rivers on the ground, but I soon found that his
information fell far short of my expectation or wishes. He drew the
river on which we now are [i.e., the Lemhi], to which he placed two
branches just above us, which he showed me, from the openings of the
mountains, were in view. He next made it discharge itself into a large
river which flowed from the S.W. about ten miles below us, then
continued this joint stream in the same direction of this valley, or
N.W., for one day's march, and then inclined it to the west for two
more days' march. Here he placed a number of heaps of sand on each
side, which, he informed me, represented the vast mountains of rock
eternally covered with snow through which the river passed. That the
perpendicular, and even jutting, rocks so closely hemmed in the river
that there was no possibility of passing along the shore; that the bed
of the river was obstructed by sharp pointed rocks, and the rapidity of
the stream such that the whole surface of the river was beaten into
perfect foam, as far as the eye could reach. That the mountains were
also inaccessible to man or horse. He said that, this being the state
of the country in that direction, himself nor none of his nation had
ever been farther down the river than these mountains. I then inquired
the state of the country on either side of the river, but he could not
inform me. He said there was an old man of his nation a day's march
below who could probably give me some information of the country to the
northwest and referred me to an old man then present for that to the
southwest.
I now told Cameahwait that I wished him to speak to his people and
engage them to go with me tomorrow to the forks of Jefferson's River,
where our baggage was by this time arrived with another chief and a
large party of white men, who would wait my return at that place; that
I wished them to take with them about thirty spare horses to transport
our baggage to this place, where we would then remain some time among
them and trade with them for horses, and finally concert our future
plans for getting on to the ocean and of the trade which would be
extended to them, after our return to our homes.
He complied with my request and made a lengthy harangue to his
village. He returned in about an hour and a half and informed me that
they would be ready to accompany me in the morning. I promised to
reward them for their trouble. Drouilliard, who had had a good view of
their horses, estimated them at 400. Most of them are fine horses.
Indeed, many of them would make a figure on the south side of James
River, or the land of fine horses. I saw several with Spanish brands on
them, and some mules, which they informed me that they had also
obtained from the Spaniards. I also saw a bridle bit of Spanish make,
and sundry other articles, which I have no doubt were obtained from the
same source.
Notwithstanding the extreme poverty of those poor people, they are
very merry. They danced again this evening until midnight. Each warrior
keeps one or more horses tied by a cord to a stake near his lodge both
day and night, and are always prepared for action at a moment's
warning. They fight on horseback altogether. I observe that the large
flies are extremely troublesome to the horses as well as ourselves.
This morning being cold, and the men stiff and sore from the
exertions of yesterday, Captain Clark did not set out this morning
until 7 A.M. The river was so crooked and rapid that they made but
little way. At one mile, he passed a bold running stream on starboard,
which heads in a mountain to the north, on which there is snow. This we
called Track Creek. It is 4 yards wide and 3 feet deep. At 7 miles,
passed a stout stream which heads in some springs under the foot of the
mountains on larboard. The river near the mountain they found one
continued rapid, which was extremely laborious and difficult to ascend.
This evening Charbonneau struck his Indian woman, for which Captain
Clark gave him a severe reprimand. Joseph and Reuben Fields killed 4
deer and an antelope. Captain Clark killed a buck. Several of the men
have lamed themselves by various accidents in working the canoes
through this difficult part of the river, and
Captain Clark was obliged personally to assist them in this labor.
Captain Lewis, 14 August 1805
This morning I arose very early and as hungry as a wolf. I had
eaten nothing yesterday except one scant meal of the flour and berries
except the dried cakes of berries, which did not appear to satisfy my
appetite as they appeared to do those of my Indian friends. I found on
inquiry of McNeal that we had only about two pounds of flour remaining.
This I directed him to divide into two equal parts and to cook the one
half this morning in a kind of pudding with the berries as he had done
yesterday, and reserve the balance for the evening. On this
new-fashioned pudding four of us breakfasted, giving a pretty good
allowance also to the chief, who declared it the best thing he had
tasted for a long time. He took a little of the flour in his hand,
tasted and examined it very scrutinously, and asked me if we made it of
roots. I explained to him the manner in which it grew.
I hurried the departure of the Indians. The chief addressed them
several times before they would move. They seemed very reluctant to
accompany me. I at length asked the reason and he told me that some
foolish persons among them had suggested the idea that we were in
league with the Pahkees and had come on in order to decoy them into an
ambuscade, where their enemies were waiting to receive them; but that,
for his part, he did not believe it. I readily perceived that our
situation was not entirely free from danger, as the transition from
suspicion to the confirmation of the fact would not be very difficult
in the minds of these ignorant people who have been accustomed from
their infancy to view every stranger as an enemy.
I told Cameahwait that I was sorry to find that they had put so
little confidence in us, that I knew they were not acquainted with
white men and therefore could forgive them. That among white men it was
considered disgraceful to lie, or entrap an enemy by falsehood. I told
him if they continued to think thus meanly of us, that they might rely
on it that no white men would ever come to trade with them, or bring
them arms and ammunition; and that, if the bulk of his nation still
entertained this opinion, I still hoped that there were some among them
that were not afraid to die -- that were men, and would go with me and
convince themselves of the truth of what I had asserted, that there was
a party of white men waiting my return, either at the forks of
Jefferson's River or a little below, coming on to that place in canoes
loaded with provisions and merchandise.
He told me, for his own part, he was determined to go, that he was
not afraid to die. I soon found that I had touched him on the right
string. To doubt the bravery of a savage is at once to put him on his
mettle. He now mounted his horse and harangued his village a third
time, the purport of which, as he afterwards told me, was to inform
them that he would go with us and convince himself of the truth or
falsity of what we had told him [even] if he was certain he should be
killed; that he hoped there were some of them who heard him were not
afraid to die with him, and if there were to let him see them mount
their horses and prepare to set out. Shortly after this harangue, he
was joined by six or eight only, and with these I smoked a pipe, and
directed the men to put on their packs, being determined to set out
with them while I had them in the humor.
At half after 12, we set out. Several of the old women were crying
and imploring the Great Spirit to protect their warriors as if they
were going to inevitable destruction. We had not proceeded far before
our party was augmented by ten or twelve more, and before we reached
the creek which we had passed in the morning of the 13th, it appeared
to me that we had all the men of the village and a number of women with
us. This may serve in some measure to illustrate the capricious
disposition of those people, who never act but from the impulse of the
moment. They were now very cheerful and gay, and two hours ago they
looked as surly as so many imps of Saturn [sic]. When we arrived at the
spring on the side of the mountain where we had encamped on the 12th,
the chief insisted on halting to let the horses graze, with which I
complied, and gave the Indians smoke. They are excessively fond of the
pipe, but have it not much in their power to indulge themselves with
even their native tobacco, as they do not cultivate it themselves.
After remaining about an hour, we again set out, and by engaging to
make compensation to four of them for their trouble, obtained the
privilege of riding with an Indian myself, and a similar situation for
each of my party. I soon found it more tiresome riding without stirrups
than walking, and of course chose the latter, making the Indian carry
my pack. About sunset, we reached the upper part of the level valley of
the cove which we now called Shoshone Cove.
Captain Lewis, 15 August 1805
I sent Drouilliard and Shields before, this morning, in order to
kill some meat, as neither the Indians nor ourselves had anything to
eat. I informed the chief of my view in this measure, and requested
that he would keep his young men with us lest by their whooping and
noise they should alarm the game and we should get nothing to eat. But
so strongly were their suspicions excited by this measure that two
parties of discovery immediately set out, one on each side of the
valley, to watch the hunters, as I believe to see whether they had not
been sent to give information of their approach to an enemy that they
still persuaded themselves were Iying in wait for them. I saw that any
further effort to prevent their going would only add strength to their
suspicions and therefore said no more.
After the hunters had been gone about an hour, we set out. We had
just passed through the narrows when we saw one of the spies coming up
the level plain under whip. The chief paused a little and seemed
somewhat concerned. I felt a good deal so myself, and began to suspect
that by some unfortunate accident, perhaps some of their enemies had
straggled hither at this unlucky moment. But we were all agreeably
disappointed, on the arrival of the young man, to learn that he had
come to inform us that one of the white men had killed a deer.
In an instant, they all gave their horses the whip, and I was taken
nearly a mile before I could learn what were the tidings. As I was
without stirrups, and an Indian behind me, the jostling was
disagreeable. I therefore reined up my horse, and forbade the Indian to
whip him, who had given him the lash at every jump for a mile, fearing
he should lose a part of the feast. The fellow was so uneasy that he
left me the horse, dismounted, and ran on foot at full speed, I am
confident, a mile. When they arrived where the deer was, which was in
view of me, they dismounted and ran in, tumbling over each other like a
parcel of famished dogs, each seizing and tearing away a part of the
intestines which had been previously thrown out by Drouilliard, who
killed it.
The scene was such, when I arrived, that had I not had a pretty
keen appetite myself, I am confident I should not have tasted any part
of the venison shortly. Each one had a piece of some description, and
all eating most ravenously. Some were eating the kidneys, the milt, and
liver, and the blood running from the corners of their mouths. Others
were in a similar situation with the paunch and guts, but the exuding
substance from their lips, in this case, was of a different
description. One of the last who attracted my attention particularly
had been fortunate in his allotment, or rather active in the division.
He had provided himself with about nine feet of the small guts, one end
of which he was chewing on, while with his hands he was squeezing the
contents out of the other. I really did not, until now, think that
human nature ever presented itself in a shape so nearly allied to the
brute creation. I viewed these poor starved devils with pity and
compassion. I directed McNeal to skin the deer and reserved a quarter;
the balance I gave the chief to be divided among his people. They
devoured the whole of it nearly, without cooking.
I now bore obliquely to the left in order to intercept the creek
where there was some brush to make a fire, and arrived at this stream,
where Drouilliard had killed a second deer. Here nearly the same scene
was enacted. A fire being kindled, we cooked and ate, and gave the
balance of the two deer to the Indians, who ate the whole of them, even
to the soft parts of the hoofs. Drouilliard joined us at breakfast with
a third deer. Of this I reserved a quarter, and gave the balance to the
Indians.
They all appeared now to have filled themselves, and were in a good
humor. This morning early, soon after the hunters set out, a
considerable part of our escort became alarmed and returned, 28 men and
three women only continued with us. After eating, and suffering the
horses to graze about 2 hours, we renewed our march, and toward evening
arrived at the lower part of the cove. Shields killed an antelope on
the way, a part of which we took and gave the remainder to the Indians.
Being now informed of the place at which I expected to meet Captain
Clark and the party, they insisted on making a halt, which was complied
with.
We now dismounted, and the chief, with much ceremony, put tippets
about our necks such as they themselves wore. I readily perceived that
this was to disguise us and owed its origin to the same cause already
mentioned. To give them further confidence, I put my cocked hat with
feather on the chief, and my over-shirt being of the Indian form, my
hair disheveled and skin well browned with the sun, I wanted no further
addition to make me a complete Indian in appearance. The men followed
my example, and we were soon completely metamorphosed. I again repeated
to them the possibility of the party not having arrived at the place
where I expected they were, but assured them they could not be far
below, lest by not finding them at the forks their suspicions might
arise to such heights as to induce them to return precipitately.
We now set out and rode briskly within sight of the forks, making
one of the Indians carry the flag, that our own party should know who
we were. When we arrived in sight at the distance of about two miles, I
discovered to my mortification that the party had not arrived, and the
Indians slackened their pace. I now scarcely knew what to do, and
feared every moment when they would halt altogether. I now determined
to restore their confidence, cost what it might, and therefore gave the
chief my gun, and told him that if his enemies were in those bushes
before him that he could defend himself with that gun, that for my own
part I was not afraid to die, and if I deceived him he might make what
use of the gun he thought proper, or in other words that he might shoot
me. The men also gave their guns to other Indians, which seemed to
inspire them with more confidence. They sent their spies before them at
some distance, and when I drew near the place I thought of the notes
which I had left, and directed Drouilliard to go with an Indian man and
bring them to me, which he did, the Indian seeing him take the notes
from the stake on which they had been placed.
I now had recourse to a stratagem in which I thought myself
justified by the occasion, but which I must confess sat a little
awkward. It had its desired effect. After reading the notes, which were
the same I had left, I told the chief that when I had left my brother
chief with the party below where the river entered the mountain, we
both agreed not to bring the canoes higher up than the next forks of
the river above us, wherever this might happen; that there he was to
await my return, should he arrive first; and that in the event of his
not being able to travel as fast as usual from the difficulty of the
water, he was to send up to the first forks above him and leave a note
informing me where he was, that this note was left here today; and that
he informed me that he was just below the mountains and was coming on
slowly up, and added that I should wait here for him; but, if they did
not believe me, that I should send a man at any rate to the chief, and
they might also send one of their young men with him; that myself and
two others would remain with them at this place.
This plan was readily adopted, and one of the young men offered his
services. I promised him a knife and some beads as a reward for his
confidence in us. Most of them seemed satisfied, but there were several
that complained of the chief's exposing them to danger unnecessarily
and said that we told different stories; in short, a few were much
dissatisfied. I wrote a note to Captain Clark by the light of some
willow brush, and directed Drouilliard to set out early, being
confident that there was not a moment to spare.
We finally lay down, and the chief placed himself by the side of my
mosquito bier. I slept but little, as might be well expected, my mind
dwelling on the state of the expedition which I have ever held in equal
estimation with my own existence, and the fate of which appeared at
this moment to depend in a great measure upon the caprice of a few
savages, who are ever as fickle as the wind.
I had mentioned to the chief several times that we had with us a
woman of his nation who had been taken prisoner by the Minnetarees, and
that by means of her I hoped to explain myself more fully than I could
do [by] signs. Some of the party had also told the Indians that we had
a man with us who was black and had short curling hair. This had
excited their curiosity very much, and they seemed quite as anxious to
see this monster as they were the merchandise which we had to barter
for their horses.
This morning I arose very early and dispatched Drouilliard and the
Indian down the river. Sent Shields to hunt. I made McNeal cook the
remainder of our meat, which afforded a slight breakfast for ourselves
and the chief. Drouilliard had been gone about two hours when an
Indian, who had straggled some little distance down the river, returned
and reported that the white men were coming, that he had seen them just
below. They all appeared transported with joy, and the chief repeated
his fraternal hug. I felt quite as much gratified at this information
as the Indians appeared to be. Shortly after, Captain Clark arrived
with the interpreter, Charbonneau, and the Indian woman, who proved to
be a sister of the chief Cameahwait.
The meeting of those people was really affecting, particularly
between Sacagawea and an Indian woman who had been taken prisoner at
the same time with her, and who had afterwards escaped from the
Minnetarees and rejoined her nation.
At noon the canoes arrived, and we had the satisfaction once more
to find ourselves all together, with a flattering prospect of being
able to obtain as many horses shortly as would enable us to prosecute
our voyage by land should that by water be deemed inadvisable.
We now formed our camp just below the junction of the forks on the
larboard side in a level, smooth bottom covered with a fine turf of
greensward. Here we unloaded our canoes and arranged our baggage on
shore. Formed a canopy of one of our large sails and planted some
willow brush in the ground to form a shade for the Indians to sit under
while we spoke to them, which we thought it best to do this evening.
Accordingly, about 4 P.M., we called them together and through the
medium of Labiche, Charbonneau, and Sacagawea, we communicated to them
fully the objects which had brought us into this distant part of the
country, in which we took care to make them a conspicuous object of our
own good wishes and the care of our government. We made them sensible
of their dependence on the will of our government for every species of
merchandise as well for their defense and comfort, and apprised them of
the strength of our government and its friendly dispositions toward
them. We also gave them as a reason why we wished to penetrate the
country as far as the ocean to the west of them was to examine and find
out a more direct way to bring merchandise to them. That as no trade
could be carried on with them before our return to our homes, that it
was mutually advantageous to them as well as to ourselves that they
should render us such aids as they had it in their power to furnish in
order to hasten our voyage and, of course, our return home: that such
were their horses to transport our baggage, without which we could not
subsist, and that a pilot to conduct us through the mountains was also
necessary if we could not descend the river by water. But that we did
not ask either their horses or their services without giving a
satisfactory compensation in return. That at present we wished them to
collect as many horses as were necessary to transport our baggage to
their village on the Columbia, where we would then trade with them at
our leisure for such horses as they could spare us. They appeared well
pleased with what had been said. The chief thanked us for friendship
toward himself and nation and declared his wish to serve us in every
respect; that he was sorry to find that it must yet be some time before
they could be furnished with firearms, but said they could live as they
had done heretofore until we brought them as we had promised. He said
they had not horses enough with them at present to remove our baggage
to their village over the mountain, but that he would return tomorrow
and encourage his people to come over with their horses, and that he
would bring his own and assist us. This was complying with all we
wished at present. We next inquired who were chiefs among them.
Cameahwait pointed out two others, who, he said, were chiefs. We gave
him a medal of the small size with the likeness of Mr. Jefferson, the
President of the United States, in relief on one side, and clasped
hands with a pipe and tomahawk on the other. To the other chiefs we
gave each a small medal which were struck in the Presidency of George
Washington, Esq. We also gave small medals of the last description to
two young men who, the first chief informed us, were good young men and
much respected among them.
Captain Clark and myself now concerted measures for our future
operations; and it was mutually agreed that he should set out tomorrow
morning with eleven men, furnished with axes and other necessary tools
for making canoes, their arms, accouterments, and as much of their
baggage as they could carry, also to take the Indians, Charbonneau, and
the Indian woman with him. That on his arrival at the Shoshone camp, he
was to leave Charbonneau and the Indian woman to hasten the return of
the Indians with their horses to this place, and to proceed himself
with the eleven men down the Columbia in order to examine the river;
and, if he found it navigable and could obtain timber, to set about
making canoes immediately. In the meantime, I was to bring on the party
and baggage to the Shoshone camp, calculating that by the time I should
reach that place, he would have sufficiently informed himself with
respect to the state of the river, to determine us whether to prosecute
our journey from thence by land or water.
Captain Lewis, 17 August 1805
We set out at 7 o'clock and proceeded on to the forks. I had not
proceeded on one mile before I saw, at a distance, several Indians on
horseback coming toward me. The interpreter and squaw, who were before
me at some distance, danced for the joyful sight, and she made signs to
me that they were her nation. As I approached nearer them, discovered
one of Captain Lewis's party with them dressed in their dress. They met
me with great signs of joy. As the canoes were proceeding on nearly
opposite me, I turned those people and joined Captain Lewis, who had
camped with 16 of those Snake Indians at the forks 2 miles in advance.
Those Indians sang all the way to their camp, where the others had
provided a kind of shade of willows stuck up in a circle.
The three chiefs with Captain Lewis met me with great cordiality,
embraced, and took a seat on a white robe. The main chief immediately
tied to my hair six small pieces of shells, resembling pearl, which are
highly valued by those people, and are procured from the nations
residing near the seacoast. We then smoked in their fashion, without
shoes.
Captain Lewis informed me he found those people on the Columbia
River about 40 miles from the forks. At that place there was a large
camp of them. He had persuaded those with him to come and see that what
he said was the truth. They had been under great apprehension all the
way, for fear of their being deceived. The Great Chief of this nation
proved to be the brother of the woman with us, and is a man of
influence, sense, and easy and reserved manners. Appears to possess a
great deal of sincerity. The canoes arrived and unloaded. Everything
appeared to astonish those people--the appearance of the men, their
arms, the canoes, the clothing, my black servant, and the sagacity of
Captain Lewis's dog. We spoke a few words to them in the evening
respecting our route, intentions, our want of horses, and gave them a
few presents and medals. We made a number of inquiries of those people
about the Columbia River, the country, game, The account they gave us
was very unfavorable, that the river abounded in immense falls--one,
particularly, much higher than the Falls of the Missouri, and at the
place, the mountains closed so close that it was impracticable to pass,
and that the ridge continued on each side of perpendicular cliffs
impenetrable, and that no deer, elk, or any game was to be found in
that country. Added to that, they informed us that there was no timber
on the river sufficiently large to make small canoes. This information,
if true, is alarming. I determined to go in advance and examine the
country.
Captain Clark, 17 August 1805
This morning, while Captain Clark was busily engaged in preparing
for his route, I exposed some articles to barter with the Indians for
horses, as I wished a few at this moment to relieve the men who were
going with Captain Clark from the labor of carrying their baggage, and
also one to keep here in order to pack the meat to camp which the
hunters might kill. I soon obtained three very good horses, for which I
gave a uniform coat, a pair of leggings, a few handkerchiefs, three
knives, and some other small articles, the whole of which did not cost
more than about $20 in the United States. The Indians seemed quite as
well pleased with their bargain as I was. The men also purchased one
for an old checked shirt, a pair of old leggings, and a knife. Two of
those I purchased, Captain Clark took on with him. At 10 A.M.,
Captain Clark departed with his detachment and all the Indians,
except 2 men and 2 women, who remained with us.
This day I completed my thirty-first year, and conceived that I
had, in all human probability, now existed about half the period which
I am to remain in this sublunary world. I reflected that I had as yet
done but little, very little, indeed, to further the happiness of the
human race, or to advance the information of the succeeding generation.
I viewed with regret the many hours I have spent in indolence, and now
sorely feel the want of that information which those hours would have
given me had they been judiciously expended. But, since they are past
and cannot be recalled, I dash from me the gloomy thought, and resolve
in future to redouble my exertions and at least endeavor to promote
those two primary objects of human existence, by giving them the aid of
that portion of talents which Nature and fortune have bestowed on me;
or, in future, to live for mankind, as I have heretofore lived for
myself.
Captain Lewis, 18 August 1805
This morning I arose at daylight and sent out three hunters. Some
of the men who were much in want of leggings and moccasins I suffered
to dress some skins, the others I employed in repacking the baggage,
making pack saddles, etc. We took up the net this morning, but caught
no fish. The frost which perfectly whitened the grass this morning had
a singular appearance to me at this season. This evening I made a few
of the men construct a seine of willow brush, which we hauled, and
caught a large number of fine trout and a kind of mullet, about 16
inches long, which I had not seen before.
Captain Lewis, 19 August 1805
This morning I sent out the two hunters, and employed the balance
of the party pretty much as yesterday. I walked down the river about
3/4 of a mile and selected a place near the river bank, unperceived by
the Indians, for a cache which I set three men to make, and directed
the sentinel to discharge his gun if he perceived any of the Indians
going down in that direction, which was to be a signal for the men at
work on the cache to desist and separate, lest these people should
discover our deposit, and rob us of the baggage we intend leaving here.
By evening the cache was completed, unperceived by the Indians; and
all our packages made up. The packsaddles and harness are not yet
completed. In this operation, we find ourselves at a loss for nails and
boards. For the former, we substitute thongs of rawhide, which answer
very well, and for the latter [had] to cut off the blades of our oars
and use the plank of some boxes which have heretofore held other
articles, and put those articles into sacks of rawhide which I have had
made for the purpose. By this means I have obtained as many boards as
will make 20 saddles, which I suppose will be sufficient for our
present exigencies. The Indians with us behave themselves extremely
well.
This morning, Captain Clark set out at 6 in the morning, and soon
after arrived near their camp, they [the Shoshones] having removed
about 2 miles higher up the river than the camp at which they were when
I first visited them. The chief requested a halt, which was complied
with, and a number of the Indians came out from the village and joined
them. After smoking a few pipes with them, they all proceeded to the
village, where Captain Clark was conducted to a large lodge prepared
in the center of the encampment for himself and party. Here they gave
him one salmon and some cakes of dried berries. He now repeated to them
what had been said to them in council at this place, which was repeated
to the village by the chief. When he had concluded this address, he
requested a guide to accompany him down the river, and an elderly man
was pointed out by the chief who consented to undertake this task. This
was the old man of whom Cameahwait had spoken as a person well
acquainted with the country to the north of this river.
Captain Lewis, 20 August 1805
The party pursued their several occupations, as yesterday. By
evening I had all the baggage, saddles, and harnesses completely ready
for a march. After dark, I made the men take the baggage to the cache
and deposit it. I believe we have been unperceived by the Indians in
this movement.
This morning early, Captain Clark resumed his march. At the
distance of five miles, he arrived at some brush lodges of the
Shoshones inhabited by about seven families. Here he halted.
Captain Lewis, 21 August 1805
This morning early, I sent a couple of men to complete the covering
of the cache, which could not be done well last night in the dark. They
soon accomplished their work and returned. Late last night Drouilliard
returned with a fawn he had killed, and a considerable quantity of
Indian plunder.
The anecdote with respect to the latter is perhaps worthy of
relation. He informed me that, while hunting in the cove yesterday,
about 12 o'clock he came suddenly upon an Indian camp at which there
were a young man, an old man, and a boy and three women; they seemed
but little surprised at seeing him, and he rode up to them and
dismounted turning his horse out to graze. These people had just
finished their repast on some roots. He entered into conversation with
them by signs, and after about 20 minutes one of the women spoke to the
others of the party, and they all went immediately and collected their
horses, brought them to camp, and saddled them. At this moment, he
thought he would also set out and continue his hunt, and accordingly
walked to catch his horse at some little distance, and neglected to
take up his gun, which he left at camp.
The Indians, perceiving him at the distance of fifty paces,
immediately mounted their horses, the young man took the gun, and the
whole of them left their baggage, and laid whip to their horses,
directing their course to the pass of the mountains. Finding himself
deprived of his gun, he immediately mounted his horse and pursued.
After running them about 10 miles, the horses of two of the women
nearly gave out and the young fellow with the gun, from their frequent
cries, slackened his pace and, being on a very fleet horse, rode around
the women at a little distance. At length Drouilliard overtook the
women and by signs convinced them that he did not wish to hurt them.
They then halted, and the young fellow approached still nearer. He
asked him for his gun, but the only part of the answer which he could
understand, was "Pahkee," which he knew to be the name by which they
called their enemies.
Watching his opportunity when the fellow was off his guard, he
suddenly rode alongside of him, seized his gun, and wrested it out of
his hands. The fellow, finding Drouilliard too strong for him and
discovering that he must yield the gun, had presence of mind to open
the pan and cast the priming before he let the gun escape from his
hands. Now finding himself divested of the gun, he turned his horse
about and laid whip, leaving the women to follow him as well as they
could. Drouilliard now returned to the place they had left their
baggage and brought it with him to my camp.
At 11 a.m. Charbonneau, the Indian woman, Cameahwait, and about 50
men, with a number of women and children, arrived. They encamped near
us. After they had turned out their horses and arranged their camp, I
called the chiefs and warriors together and addressed them; gave them
some further presents, particularly the second and third chiefs, who,
it appeared, had agreeably to their promise exerted themselves in my
favor.
Captain Lewis, 22 August 1805
I wished to have set out this morning, but the chief requested that
I would wait until another party of his nation arrived which he
expected today. To this I consented from necessity, and therefore sent
out the hunters. I also laid up the canoes this morning in a pond near
the forks; sunk them in the water and weighted them down with stone,
after taking out the plugs of the gage holes in their bottoms,. hoping
by this means to guard against both the effects of high water and that
of the fire which is frequently kindled in these plains by the natives.
The Indians have promised to do them no intentional injury, and I
believe they are too lazy at any rate to give themselves the trouble to
raise them from their present situation in order to cut or burn them.
At three p.m. the expected party of Indians arrived, about 50 men,
women, and children. There was a good deal of anxiety on the part of
some of those who had promised to assist me over the mountains; I felt
some uneasiness on this subject, but as they still said they would
return with me as they had promised, I said nothing to them but
resolved to set out in the morning as early as possible.
Captain Clark set out this morning very early and proceeded but
slowly in consequence of the difficulty of his road, which lay along
the steep side of a mountain over large irregular and broken masses of
rocks which had tumbled from the upper part of the mountain. It was
with much risk and pain that the horses could get on. At the distance
of four miles, he arrived at the river, and the rocks here were so
steep and jutted into the river in such manner that there was no other
alternative but passing through the river. This he attempted with
success, though the water was so deep for a short distance as to swim
the horses and was very rapid.
He continued his route one mile along the edge of the river under
this steep cliff to a little bottom, below which the whole current of
the river beat against the starboard shore on which he was, and which
was formed of a solid rock perfectly inaccessible to horses. Here also
the little track, which he had been pursuing, terminated. He therefore
determined to leave the horses and the majority of the party here and,
with his guide and three men, to continue his route down the river
still further, in order more fully to satisfy himself as to its
practicability.
Accordingly, he directed the men to hunt and fish at this place
until his return. They had not killed anything today but one goose, and
the balance of the little provision they had brought with them, as well
as the five salmon they had procured yesterday, were consumed last
evening. There was, of course, no inducement for his halting at any
time, at this place.
After a few minutes, he continued his route, clambering over
immense rocks and along the sides of lofty precipices on the border of
the river to the distance of 12 miles.
He saw some late appearance of Indians having been encamped, and
the tracks of a number of horses. Captain Clark halted here about 2
hours, caught some small fish on which, with the addition of some
berries, they dined. The river, from the place at which he left the
party to his present station, was one continued rapid, in which there
were five shoals, neither of which could be passed with loaded canoes,
nor even run with empty ones. At those several places, therefore, it
would be necessary to unload and transport the baggage for a
considerable distance over steep and almost inaccessible rocks where
there was no possibility of employing horses for the relief of the men.
The canoes would next have to be let down by cords, and even with this
precaution, Captain Clark conceived there would be much risk of both
canoes and men.
After dinner, Captain Clark continued his route down the river and
at 1/2 a mile passed another creek not so large as that just mentioned,
or about 5 yards wide. Here his guide informed him that by ascending
this creek some distance, they would have a better road, and would cut
off a considerable bend which the river made to the south. Accordingly,
he pursued a well-beaten Indian track, which led up this creek about
six miles, then, leaving the creek on the right, he passed over a
ridge; and at the distance of a mile, arrived at the river where it
passes through a well-timbered bottom of about eighty acres of land.
They passed this bottom and ascended a steep and elevated point of a
mountain from whence the guide showed him the break of the river
through the mountains for about 20 miles further. This view was
terminated by one of the most lofty mountains, Captain Clark informed
me, he had ever seen which was perfectly covered with snow.
Captain Clark, being now perfectly satisfied as to the
impracticability of this route either by land or water, informed the
old man that he was convinced of the veracity of his assertions and
would now return to the village from whence they had set out, where he
expected to meet myself and party.
Captain Lewis, 23 August 1805
As the Indians who were on their way down the Missouri had a number
of spare horses with them, I thought it probable that I could obtain
some of them and therefore desired the chief to speak to them and
inform me whether they would trade. They gave no positive answer but
requested to see the goods which I was willing to give in exchange. I
now produced some battle axes which I had made at Fort Mandan, with
which they were much pleased. Knives also seemed in great demand among
them. I soon purchased three horses and a mule.
I had now nine horses and a mule, and two which I had hired made
twelve. These I had loaded, and the Indian women took the balance of
the baggage. I had given the interpreter some articles with which to
purchase a horse for the woman, which he had obtained. At twelve
o'clock we set out, and passed the river below the forks, directing our
route toward the cove along the track formerly mentioned. Most of the
horses were heavily laden, and it appears to me that it will require at
least 25 horses to convey our baggage along such roads as I expect we
shall be obliged to pass in the mountains. I had now the inexpressible
satisfaction to find myself once more under way with all my baggage and
party.
Captain Lewis, 24 August 1805
I wrote a letter to Captain Lewis informing him of the prospects
before us and information received of my guide which I thought
favorable, and stating two plans, one of which for us to pursue, and
dispatched one man and horse, and directed the party to get ready to
march back. Every man appeared disheartened from the prospects of the
river, and nothing to eat. I set out late and camped 2 miles above.
Nothing to eat but chokecherries and red haws, which act in different
ways so as to make us sick. Dew very heavy, my bedding wet. In passing
around a rock, the horses were obliged to go deep into the water.
The plan I stated to Captain Lewis--if he agrees with me we shall
adopt--is: to procure as many horses (one for each man if possible) and
to hire my present guide, whom I sent on to him to interrogate through
the interpreter, and proceed on by land to some navigable part of the
Columbia River, or to the ocean, depending on what provisions we can
procure by the gun added to the small stock we have on hand, depending
on our horses as the last resort.
A second plan: to divide the party, one part to attempt this
difficult river with what provisions we have, and the remainder to pass
by land on horseback, depending on our guns for provisions, and come
together occasionally on the river. The first of which I would be most
pleased with,
Captain Clark, 24 August 1805
Some time after we had halted, Charbonneau mentioned to me, with
apparent unconcern, that he expected to meet all the Indians from the
camp on the Columbia tomorrow on their way to the Missouri. Alarmed at
this information, I asked why he expected to meet them. He then
informed me that the first chief had dispatched some of his young men
this morning to this camp requesting the Indians to meet them tomorrow,
and that himself and those with him would go on with them down the
Missouri, and consequently leave me and my baggage on the mountain or
thereabouts.
I was out of patience with the folly of Charbonneau, who had not
sufficient sagacity to see the consequences which would inevitably flow
from such a movement of the Indians. Although he had been in possession
of this information since early in the morning, when it had been
communicated to him by his Indian woman, yet he never mentioned it
until the afternoon. I could not forbear speaking to him with some
degree of asperity on this occasion.
I saw that there was no time to be lost in having those orders
countermanded, or that we should not in all probability obtain any more
horses or even get my baggage to the waters of the Columbia. I
therefore called the three chiefs together and, having smoked a pipe
with them, I asked them if they were men of their word, and whether I
could depend on the promises they had made me. They readily answered in
the affirmative. I then asked them if they had not promised to assist
me with my baggage to their camp on the other side of the mountains, or
to the place at which Captain Clark might build the canoes, should I
wish it. They acknowledged that they had.
I then asked them why they had requested their people on the other
side of the mountain to meet them tomorrow on the mountain, where there
would be no possibility of our remaining together for the purpose of
trading for their horses as they had also promised. That if they had
not promised to have given me their assistance in transporting my
baggage to the waters on the other side of the mountain, that I should
not have attempted to pass the mountains, but would have returned down
the river and that, in that case, they would never have seen any more
white men in their country. That if they wished the white men to be
their friends and to assist them against their enemies by furnishing
them with arms, and keeping their enemies from attacking them, that
they must never promise us anything which they did not mean to perform.
That when I had first seen them they had doubted what I told them about
the arrival of the party of white men in canoes, that they had been
convinced that what I told them on that occasion was true; why then
would they doubt what I said on any other point? I told them that they
had witnessed my liberality in dividing the meat which my hunters
killed with them; and that I should continue to give such of them as
assisted me a part of whatever we had ourselves to eat; and finally
concluded by telling them if they intended to keep the promises they
had made me, to dispatch one of their young men immediately with orders
to their people to remain where they were until our arrival.
The two inferior chiefs said that they wished to assist me and be
as good as their word, and that they had not sent for their people,
that it was the first chief who had done so, and they did not approve
of the measure. Cameahwait remained silent for some time. At length, he
told me that he knew he had done wrong; but that he had been induced to
that measure from seeing all his people hungry; but, as he had promised
to give me his assistance, he would not in future be worse than his
word. I then desired him to send immediately and countermand his
orders. Accordingly, a young man was sent for this purpose and I gave
him a handkerchief to engage him in my interest.
Captain Lewis, 25 August 1805
We collected our horses and set out at sunrise. We soon arrived at
the extreme source of the Missouri. Here I halted a few minutes. The
men drank of the water and consoled themselves with the idea of having
at length arrived at this long-wished-for point. From hence we
proceeded to a fine spring on the side of the mountain, where I had
lain the evening before I first arrived at the Shoshone camp. Here I
halted to dine, and graze our horses, there being fine green grass on
that part of the hillside which was moistened by the water of the
spring, while the grass on the other parts was perfectly dry and
parched with the sun. I directed a pint of corn to be given each Indian
who was engaged in transporting our baggage, and about the same
quantity to each of the men, which they parched, pounded, and made into
soup. One of the women who had been assisting in the transportation of
the baggage halted at a little run about a mile behind us, and sent on
the two pack horses which she had been conducting by one of her female
friends. I inquired of Cameahwait the cause of her detention and was
informed by him, in an unconcerned manner, that she had halted to bring
forth a child and would soon overtake us. In about an hour the woman
arrived with her newborn babe and passed us on her way to the camp,
apparently as well as she ever was.
Cameahwait requested that we would discharge our guns when we
arrived in sight of the village. Accordingly, when I arrived on an
eminence above the village in the plain, I drew up the party at open
order in a single rank, and gave them a running fire, discharging two
rounds. They appeared much gratified with this exhibition. We then
proceeded to the village or encampment of brush lodges, 32 in number. I
found Colter here, who had just arrived with a letter from
Captain Clark, in which Captain Clark had given me an account of
his peregrination and the description of the river and country as
before detailed. From this view of the subject I found it a folly to
think of attempting to descend this river in canoes, and therefore
determined to commence the purchase of horses in the morning from the
Indians in order to carry into execution the design we had formed of
passing the Rocky Mountains.
I now informed Cameahwait of my intended expedition overland to the
great river which lay in the plains beyond the mountains, and told him
that I wished to purchase 20 horses of himself and his people to convey
our baggage. He observed that the Minnetarees had stolen a great number
of their horses this spring but hoped his people would spare me the
number I wished. I also asked another guide; he observed that he had no
doubt but the old man who was with Captain Clark would accompany us if
we wished him and that he was better informed of the country than any
of them. Matters being thus far arranged, I directed the fiddle to be
played and the party danced very merrily, much to the amusement and
gratification of the natives, though I must confess that the state of
my own mind at this moment did not well accord with the prevailing
mirth.
Captain Lewis, 26 August 1805
A cloudy morning. Rained some last night. We set out early and
proceeded on up the [Fish] Creek, crossed a large fork from the right
and one from the left, and at 8 [7 1/2 ] miles left the road on which
we were pursuing and which leads over to the Missouri, and proceeded up
a west fork [of Fish Creek] without a road. Proceeded on through
thickets in which we were obliged to cut a road, over rocky hillsides
where our horses were in perpetual danger of slipping to their certain
destruction, and up and down steep hills where several horses fell.
Some turned over and others slipped down steep hillsides. One horse
crippled, and two gave out. One load left about two miles back, the
horse on which it was carried, crippled.
Captain Clark, 2 September 1805
A cloudy morning. Horses very stiff. Sent two men back with the
horse on which Captain Lewis rode, for the load left back last
night-which detained us until 8 o'clock, at which time we set out. The
country is timbered with pine generally. The bottoms have a great
variety of shrubs, and the fir trees in great abundance. Hills high and
rocky on each side. In the after part of the day, the high mountains
closed the creek on each side and obliged us to take on the steep sides
of those mountains-so steep that the horses could scarcely keep from
slipping down. Several slipped and injured themselves very much. At
dusk it began to snow; at 3 o'clock some rain. The mountains [we had
passed] to the east covered with snow. We met with a great misfortune
in having our last thermometer broken by accident. This day we passed
over immense hills, and some of the worst roads that ever horses
passed. Our horses frequently fell. Snow about 2 inches deep when it
began to rain, which terminated in a sleet storm.
Captain Clark, 3 September 1805
We set out early, the morning cloudy, and proceeded on down the
right side of Kooskooskee River, over steep points, rocky and bushy as
usual, for 4 miles to an old Indian fishing place. Here the road leaves
the river to the left and ascends a mountain, winding in every
direction to get up the steep ascents and to pass the immense quantity
of falling timber which had been falling from different causes-i.e.,
fire and wind-and has deprived the greater part of the southerly sides
of this mountain of its green timber.
Four miles up the mountain I found a spring and halted for the rear
to come up, and to let our horses rest and feed. ln about 2 hours, the
rear of the party came up much fatigued, and horses more so. Several
horses slipped and rolled down steep hills, which hurt them very much.
The one which carried my desk and small trunk turned over and rolled
down a mountain for 40 yards and lodged against a tree. Broke the desk;
the horse escaped and appeared but little hurt. Some others very much
hurt.
Captain Clark, 15 September 1805
Captain Clark set out this morning to go ahead with six hunters.
There being no game in these mountains, we concluded it would be better
for one of us to take the hunters and hurry on to the level country
ahead and there hunt and provide some provisions, while the other
remained with and brought on the party. The latter of these was my
part. Accordingly, I directed the horses to be gotten up early, being
determined to force my march as much as the abilities of our horses
would permit. The negligence of one of the party (Willard), who had a
spare horse, in not attending to him and bringing him up last evening,
was the cause of our detention this morning until 1/2 after eight A.M.,
when we set out. I sent Willard back to search for his horse, and
proceeded on with the party. At four in the evening, he overtook us
without the horse. We marched 18 miles this day and encamped on the
side of a steep mountain. We suffered for water this day, passing one
rivulet only. We were fortunate in finding water in a steep ravine
about 1/2 mile from our camp. This morning we finished the remainder of
our last colt. We dined and supped on a scant proportion of portable
soup, a few canisters of which, a little bear's oil, and about 20
pounds of candles form our stock of provision, the only resources being
our guns and pack horses. The first is but a poor dependence in our
present situation, where there is nothing upon earth except ourselves
and a few small pheasants, small gray squirrels, and a blue bird of the
vulture kind about the size of a turtledove or jaybird. Our route lay
along the ridge of a high mountain. Course S. 20 W. 18 miles. Used the
snow for cooking.
Captain Lewis, 18 September 1805
A fair morning. Cold. I proceeded on in advance with six hunters.
Made 32 miles and encamped on a bold running creek passing to the left,
which I call Hungry Creek, as at that place we had nothing to eat.
Captain Clark, 18 September 1805
Set out this morning a little after sunrise and continued our route
about the same course of yesterday, or S. 20 W. for 6 miles when the
ridge terminated and we, to our inexpressible joy, discovered a large
tract of prairie country lying to the S.W., and widening as it appeared
to extend to the W. Through that plain the Indian informed us that the
Columbia River - of which we were in search-ran.
After leaving the ridge, we ascended and descended several steep
mountains in the distance of 6 miles further when we struck a creek
about 15 yards wide, our course being S. 35 W. The road was excessively
dangerous along this creek, being a narrow rocky path, generally on the
side of a steep precipice, from which, in many places, if either man or
horse were precipitated, they would inevitably be dashed to pieces.
Frazer's horse fell from this road in the evening, and rolled with his
load near a hundred yards into the creek. We all expected that the
horse was killed, but to our astonishment, when the load was taken off
him, he arose to his feet and appeared to be but little injured. In 20
minutes he proceeded with his load. This was the most wonderful escape
I ever witnessed. The hill down which he rolled was almost
perpendicular and broken by large, irregular, and broken rocks.
Captain Lewis, 19 September 1805
Set out early. Proceeded on up the Hungry Creek, passing through a
small glade at 6 miles, at which place we found a horse. I directed him
killed and hung up for the party after taking a breakfast off for
ourselves, which we thought fine.
Captain Lewis, 19 September 1805
I set out early and proceeded on through a country as rugged as
usual. Passed over a low mountain into the forks of a large creek which
I kept down 2 miles, and ascended a high steep mountain leaving the
creek to our left hand. Passed the head of several drains on a dividing
ridge, and at 12 miles descended the mountain to a level pine country.
Proceeded on through a beautiful country for three miles to a small
plain in which I found many Indian lodges.
At the distance of 1 mile from the lodges, I met 3 Indian boys.
When they saw me, they ran and hid themselves in the grass. I
dismounted, gave my gun and horse to one of the men, searched in the
grass, and found 2 of the boys. Gave them small pieces of ribbon, and
sent them forward to the village. Soon after, a man came out to meet me
with great caution, and conducted me [us] to a large spacious lodge,
which he told me, by signs, was the lodge of his great chief, who had
set out 3 days previous with all the warriors of the nation to war, on
a southwest direction, and would return in 15 or 18 days. The few men
that were left in the village, and great numbers of women, gathered
around me with much apparent signs of fear, and appear pleased. They
(those people) gave us a small piece of buffalo meat, some dried salmon
berries, and roots in different states-some round and much like an
onion, which they call pas-she-co. Of this they make bread and soup.
They also gave us the bread made of this root, all of which we ate
heartily. I gave them a few small articles as presents and proceeded on
with a chief to his village-2 miles in the same plain.
Captain Lewis, 20 September 1805
A fine morning. Sent out all the hunters in different directions to
hunt deer. I myself delayed with the chief to prevent suspicion, and to
collect, by signs, as much information as possible about the river and
country in advance. The chief drew me a kind of chart of the river, and
informed me that a greater chief than himself was fishing at the river
half a day's march from his village, that he was called The Twisted
Hair; and that the river forked a little below his camp. At a long
distance below, and below two large forks-one from the left and the
other from the right-the river passed through the mountains, at which
place was a great fall of the water passing through the rocks. At those
falls, white people lived from whom they procured the white beads, and
brass, which the women wore.
A chief of another band visited me today and smoked a pipe. I gave
my handkerchief and a silver cord with a little tobacco to those
chiefs. The hunters all return without anything. I purchased as much
provisions as I could with what few things I chanced to have in my
pockets, such as salmon, bread, roots, and berries, and sent one man -
R. Fields - with an Indian to meet Captain Lewis, and at 4 o'clock P.M.
set out to the river.
Met a man at dark on his way from the river to the village, whom I
hired and gave the neck handkerchief of one of the men, to pilot me to
the camp of The Twisted Hair. We did not arrive at the camp of The
Twisted Hair, but opposite, until half past 11 o'clock P.M. Found at
this camp five squaws and 3 children. My guide called to the chief, who
was encamped with 2 others on a small island in the river. He soon
joined me. I found him a cheerful man with apparent sincerity. I gave
him a medal, and smoked until one o'clock A.M., and went to sleep.
Captain Clark, 21 September 1805
We had proceeded about two and a half miles when we met Reuben
Fields, one of our hunters, whom Captain Clark had dispatched to meet
us with some dried fish and roots that he had procured from a band of
Indians, whose lodges were about eight miles in advance. I ordered the
party to halt for the purpose of taking some refreshment. I divided the
fish, roots, and berries, and was happy to find a sufficiency to
satisfy completely all our appetites. Fields also killed a crow.
After refreshing ourselves, we proceeded to the village - due west
7 1/2 miles-where we arrived at 5 o'clock in the afternoon. Our route
was through lands heavily timbered, the larger wood entirely pine. The
country, except the last 3 miles, was broken and descending. The
pleasure I now felt in having triumphed over the Rocky Mountains, and
descending once more to a level and fertile country, where there was
every rational hope of finding a comfortable subsistence for myself and
party, can be more readily conceived than expressed. Nor was the
flattering prospect of the final success of the expedition less
pleasing.
On our approach to the village, which consisted of eighteen lodges,
most of the women fled to the neighboring woods on horseback with their
children-a circumstance I did not expect, as Captain Clark had
previously been with them and informed them of our pacific intentions
toward them, and also the time at which we should most probably arrive.
The men seemed but little concerned, and several of them came to meet
us at a short distance from their lodges, unarmed.
Captain Lewis, 22 September 1805
Set out with the chief and his son on a young horse for the
village, at which place I expected to meet Captain Lewis. This young
horse in fright threw himself and me 3 times, on the side of a steep
hill, and hurt my hip much. Caught a colt which we found on the road,
and I rode it for several miles until we saw the chief's horses. He
caught one, and we arrived at his village at sunset, and himself and
myself walked up to the second village, where I found Captain Lewis and
the party encamped, much fatigued and hungry, much rejoiced to find
something to eat, of which they appeared to partake plentifully. I
cautioned them of the consequences of eating too much,
The plains appeared covered with spectators viewing the white men
and the articles which we had. Our party weakened and much reduced in
flesh as well as strength. The horse I left hung up they received at a
time they were in great want, and the supply I sent by R. Fields proved
timely, and gave great encouragement to the party with Captain Lewis.
He lost 3 horses, one of which belonged to our guide. Those Indians
stole out of R.F.'s shot pouch his knife, wipers, compass, and steel,
which we could not procure from them. We attempted to have some talk
with those people, but could not, for the want of an interpreter
through which we could speak. We were compelled to converse altogether
by signs. I got The Twisted Hair to draw the river from his camp down,
which he did with great cheerfulness on a white elk skin.
We assembled the principal men as well as the chiefs and by signs
informed them where we came from, where bound, our wish to inculcate
peace and good understanding between all the red people, which appeared
to satisfy them much. We then gave two other medals to other chiefs of
bands, a flag to The Twisted Hair. Left a flag and handkerchief to the
grand chief, gave a shirt to The Twisted Hair, and a knife and
handkerchief with a small piece of tobacco to each. Finding that those
people gave no provisions today, we determined to purchase with our
small articles of merchandise; accordingly, we purchased all we could,
such as roots dried, in bread, and in their raw state, berries of red
hews and fish, and in the evening set out and proceeded on to the 2nd
village, 2 miles distant, where we also purchased a few articles, all
amounting to as much as our weak horses could carry to the river.
Captain Lewis and 2 men very sick this evening. My hip very painful.
The men trade a few old tin canisters for dressed elk skin to make
themselves shirts.
Captain Clark, 23 September 1805
Dispatched J. Colter back to hunt the horses lost in the mountains
and bring up some shot left behind, and at 10 o'clock we all set out
for the river and proceeded on by the same route I had previously
traveled, and at sunset we arrived at the island on which I found The
Twisted Hair, and formed a camp on a large island a little below.
Captain Lewis scarcely able to ride on a gentle horse which was
furnished by the chief. Several men so unwell that they were compelled
to lie on the side of the road for some time. Others obliged to be put
on horses. I gave Rush's pills to the sick this evening.
Captain Clark, 24 September 1805
A very hot day. Most of the party complaining, and 2 of our hunters
left here on the 22nd very sick; they had killed only two bucks in my
absence. I set out early with the chief and 2 young men to hunt some
trees calculated to build canoes, as we had previously determined to
proceed on by water. I was furnished with a horse, and we proceeded on
down the river. Crossed a creek at 1 mile and passed down on the north
side of the river to a fork. We halted about an hour. One of the young
men took his gig and killed 6 fine salmon, two of them were roasted and
we ate. I crossed the south fork and proceeded up on the south side,
the most of the way through a narrow pine bottom in which I saw fine
timber for canoes.
When I arrived at camp, found Captain Lewis very sick, several men
also very sick. I gave some salts and tartar emetic. We determined to
go to where the best timber was and there form a camp.
Captain Clark, 25 September 1805
All the men able to work commenced building 5 canoes. Several taken
sick at work. Our hunters returned sick without meat. J. Colter
returned. He found only one of the lost horses. On his way, killed a
deer, half of which he gave the Indians. The other proved nourishing to
the sick. Captain Lewis very sick. Nearly all the men sick. Our
Shoshone Indian guide employed himself making flint points for his
arrows.
Captain Clark, 27 September 1805
All our men getting better in health and at work at the canoes. The
Indians who visited us from below set out on their return early.
Several others come from different directions.
Captain Clark, 3 October 1805
I feel myself very unwell. All the canoes in the water. We load and
set out, after fixing all our poles, The afternoon cloudy. Proceed on,
passing many bad rapids. One canoe, that in which I went in front,
sprung a leak in passing the third rapid.
Captain Clark, 7 October 1805
A cloudy morning. Loaded our canoes, which were unloaded last
night, and set out at 9 o'clock. Passed a creek on the starboard side
at 16 miles, just below which one canoe, in which Sergeant Gass was
steering, was near turning over. She sprung a leak or split open on one
side, and bottom filled with water and sunk on the rapid. The men,
several of whom could not swim, hung on to the canoe. I had one of the
other canoes unloaded and, with the assistance of our small canoe and
one Indian canoe, took out everything and towed the empty canoe on
shore. One man, Thompson, a little hurt. Everything wet, particularly
the greater part of our small stock of merchandise. Had everything
opened, and two sentinels put over them to keep off the Indians, who
are inclined to thievery, having stolen several small articles. Those
people appeared disposed to give us every assistance in their power
during our distress.
Captain Clark, 8 October 1805
In examining our canoe, found that by putting knees and strong
pieces primed to her sides and bottom, she could be made fit for
service by the time the goods dried. Set 4 men to work at her:
Sergeants Pryor and Gass, Joe Fields and Gibson; others to collect
resin. At 1 o'clock she was finished, stronger than ever. The wet
articles, not sufficiently dried to pack up, obliged us to delay
another night. During that time, one man was trading for fish for our
voyage. At dark, we were informed that our old guide and his son had
left us, and had been seen running up the river several miles above. We
could not account for the cause of his leaving us at this time, without
receiving his pay for the services he had rendered us or letting us
know anything of his intention.
We requested the chief to send a horseman after our old guide, to
come back and receive his pay, which he advised us not to do, as his
nation would take his things from him before he passed their camps.
Captain Clark, 9 October 1805
Loaded and set out at 7 o'clock. Passed a creek on the larboard
with wide cotton willow bottoms, having passed an island and a rapid.
We arrived at the head of a very bad riffle, at which place we
landed. After viewing this riffle, two canoes were taken over very
well. The third stuck on a rock which took us an hour to get her off,
which was effected without her receiving a greater injury than a small
split in her side, which was repaired in a short time. We purchased
fish and dogs of those people, dined, and proceeded on. Here we met
with an Indian from the falls, at which place he says he saw white
people, and expressed an inclination to accompany us. Arrived at a
large southerly fork. This South Fork or Lewis's River has two forks,
which fall into it on the south.
Captain Clark, 10 October 1805
We set out early and proceeded on. Passed a rapid at two miles. At
6 miles we came to at some Indian lodges and took breakfast. We
purchased all the fish we could, and seven dogs, of those people for
stores of provisions down the river. At this place I saw a curious
sweat house underground, with a small hole at top to pass in or throw
in the hot stones, which those inside threw on as much water as to
create the temperature of heat they wished. At 9 mile, passed a rapid.
At 15 miles, halted at an Indian lodge to purchase provisions, of which
we procured some roots, five dogs, and a few fish dried. After taking
some dinner of dog, we proceeded on. Came to and encamped at 2 Indian
lodges at a great place of fishing. Here we met an Indian of a nation
near the mouth of this river. We purchased three dogs and a few fish of
those Indians. We passed today nine rapids, all of them great fishing
places. At different places on the river, saw Indian houses and slabs
and split timber raised from the ground, being the different parts of
the houses of the natives.
Captain Clark, 11 October 1805
A very cold morning. At 2 1/2 miles passed a remarkable rock, very
large and resembling the hull of a ship. Passed rapids at 6 and 9
miles. At 12 miles we came to at the head of a rapid which the Indians
told me was very bad. We viewed the rapid, found it bad in descending.
Three stern canoes stuck fast for some time on the head of the rapid,
and one struck a rock in the worst part. Fortunately, all landed safe
below the rapid, which was nearly 3 miles in length. Here we dined, and
for the first time for three weeks past, I had a good dinner of
blue-winged teal.
After dinner we set out and had not proceeded on two miles before
our stern canoe, in passing through a short rapid opposite the head of
an island, ran on a smooth rock and turned broadside. The men got out
on the rock, all except one of our Indian